Aadel Collection
Report by the Special Rapporteur, Mr. S. Amos Wako, pursuant to Commission on Human Rights resolution 1990/51
UNITED NATIONS C . Economic and Social Distr. Council VCN .4 1 1991136 February 1991 ENGLISH Original: ENGLISHIFRENC}t/ S PA NISH COttlISSION ON HUMAN RIGHTS Fourty—sevenII session Agenda item 12 QUESTION OF THE VIOLATION OF HUMAN RIGHTS AND FUNDAMENTAL FREEDOMS IN ANY PART OF TUE WORLD, WITH PARTICULAR REFERENCE TO COLONIAL AND OTHER DEPENDENT COUNTRIES AND TERRITORIES I . - . . Suzmna.ry or arbitrary execution8 Report by the Specisi Rapporteur. Mr. S. Amos Wako . nurpuant to Conniasion on Human Ri hts resolution 1990/51 GE. 91—10314/2827 1 3
r E/cN.4/ 1991/36 page ii CONTENTS Introduction ................ Chapter Paragraphs 1— 5 1 I I. ACTIVITIES OF T UE SPECIAL RAPPORTEUR .........,.... 6 — 20 A • Consultations . .... 6 B • Corwnunications .•.••••...•.•,••........ 7 19 C. Joint hearings on southern Africa 20 SITUATIONS A General . 21. B. Country situations 22—567 . Afghanistan . Bangladesh . Brazil . Bulgaria . Burkina Faso . Cameroon . Chad . Chile . China . Colombia . El Salvador . . Ethiopia . Ghana . Guatemala . Haiti . Honduras . . India . Indonesia . Iran (Islamic Republic of) . Iraq . Israel . Malawi . Mali . Mauritania . Mexico . Morocco * Myanniar . epa1 . NLger ..... 22— 24 4 25— 28 4 29— 63 6 64— 66 14 67— 70 14 71— 74 15 75— 80 15 81 16 — 99 19 —138 22 —149 34 — 157 37 —160 39 —193 39 —196 48 —206 49 —215 52 —227 56 —268 60 —289 68 —296 74 —298 76 —301 77 —309 77 — 329 79 —331 85 — 336 85 ‘ - 241 86 —346 86 II . 2 2 2 3 4 4 4 21 — 567 82 100 139 150 158 161 194 197 207 216 228 269 290 297 299 302 310 330 332 342 — . Nigeria ... 3t 7 — 355 37
CONTENTS ( continued ) E/CN.4/1991/36 page ii ]. , — Chapter Parazraphs III . IV. LEGAL AND ANALYTICAL FRANEWORK WITHIN WHICH THE MANDATE OF THE SPECIAL RAPPORTEUR IS IMPLEMENTED .. CONCLUSIONS AND RECOMMENDATIONS A. Conclusions B. Recommendations Annex 568 — 575 576 — 599 576 — 596 597 — 599 163 146 146 150 Basic Principles on the use of force and firearms by Law Enforcement Officials II. (cont'd) .PapuaNew cuinea . Paraguay ..... . Peru. . . 356—358 359—361 362—390 89 89 90 . . Philippines Romania . 391 — 422 , .. , 423— 432. 95 104 . . Senegal Somalia 432—433 434 — 439 105 106 . South Africa . . 440 — 464 108 . Sri Lanka 465 — 484 114 . Sudan .. 485—493 121 . Suriname 494 — 495 124 . ; Syrian Arab Republic Tunisia •,..,,..,,,.,...,,,,,,,,,,.,, 496 — 498 699—500 124 125 . . . Turkey Union of Soviet Socialist Republics United States of America . ,. ,. 501—504 505 — 513 514 — 520 125 128 130 . Venezuela 521 — 537 131 . Yugoslavia 538 — 564 136 . Zaire . .. 565 —567 142 152
E/CN.4/ 1991/36 page 1 INTRODUCTION 1. The present report is submitted pursuant to Commission on Human Rights resolution 1990/51 of 6 March 1990 entitled ‘ t Sunnary or arbitrary executions”. This is the ninth report of the Special Rapporteur to the Commission on Human Rights on the subject. 2. In his eight previous reports (E/CN.41l983'1l6 and Add.1, E/CN.4 11984/29 , E/CN.4/1985/17, E/cN.4/l986/z]., E/CN.4/i987/20, E/CN.411988122 and Add.l and 2, E/CN.4/1989/25 and E/CN.4/1990/22 and Add.1), the Special Rapporteur dealt with and examined the various aspects of the phenomenon of swmnary executions, including legal and theoretical issues. 3. The present report opens in chapter I with a sutanary of the activities undertaken by the Special Rapporteur over the past year. Chapter II describes country—specific situations in which the Special Rapporteur has invoked his mandate: in part B thereof, the Special Rapporteur describes urgent appeals and other coonnunications transmitted to Governments, together with any replies or observations received from them. OEe Special Rapporteur hopes that he has presented a comprehensive picture of the situation in each country. 4, In chapter III, the Special Rapporteur sets forth the legal and analytical framework within which he carried out his mandate. Finally, in chapter IV the Special Rapporteur sets forth his conclusions, highlighting four issues: (1) death threats, (2) deaths in custody, (3) executions following inadequate trial or judicial procedures, and (4) extra—legal executions within the context of situations of internal conflict. 5. Based upon his analysis of the information received, the Special Rapporteur closes his report with a number of recorr*nendations designed to more effectively ensure, in future, respect for the international instruments and standards to which his mandate refers. .
‘ ; : - E/cN.4/1991/36 page 2 I. ACTIVITIES OF TUE SPECIAL RAPPORTEUR A. Consultations ‘ . 6. OEe Special Rapporteur visited the Centre for Human Rights, United Nations Office at Geneva, in 3u17 and October/November 1990 for conaultationa with the Secretariat and again in January 1991 to finalize his report. B. Corimitmications 1. Information received 7. In the course of his present mandate, the Special Rapporteur received communications containing information concerning summary or arbitrary executions from Governments, non—governmental organizations and individuals. OEe amount of communications has increased every year. 8. Information of a general nature was received from the Governments of Zrune Darussalam, Colombia, Cuba, China, El Salvador, Kenya, Mauritania, Myanmar, Pakistan, Romania, Rwanda, Sri Lanka, United Republic of Tanzania and Yugoslavia. 9. Information of a general nature and/or concerning specific allegations of sunary or arbitrary executions was received from the following non—governmental organizations in consultative status with the Economic and Social Council: Amnesty International, Andean Commission of Jurists, Anti—Anartheid Movement, Arab Lawyers Union, Commission of the Churches on International Affairs of the World Council of Churches, International Association of Democratic Lawyers, International Commission of Jurists, International Commission of Health Professionals, International Committee of the Red Cross, International Confederation of Free Trade Unions, International Defence and Aid Fund for South Africa, International Federation of Human Rights, International Federation Terre des Hommes, International League for Human Rights, International Organization of Journalists, Pax Christi — International Catholic Peace Movement, Pax Romana — International Catholic Movement for Intellectual and Cultural Affairs, Regional Council on Human Rights in Asia, Union of Arab Jurists, Women's International Democratic Federation. 10. In addition, information concerning alleged cases of summary or arbitrary executions was received from a number of regional, national and local non—governmental organizations, groups and individuals in various parts of the world. 2. Alle2at!ons of sun nar'p or prb!tr2ry exeeut png : 11. In the course of his mandate, the Special Rapporteur sent cables and letters to Governments concerning allegations of imminent or actual summary or arbitrary executions in their countries. 12. In reply to the Special Rapporteur's cables and letters, a number of Governments provLded him with information and observations concerning the allegations. For the sake of the preparation in time of the present report, the Special Rapporteur was obliged to leave the Government replies which reached him after 15 January 1991 to his next report.
flLr - EICN.4/l99l 136 : page 3 (a) Unent appeals 13 , In response to information containing allegations of ixr ninent or threatened summary or arbitrary executions which appeared prima fade relevant to his mandate, the Special Rapporteur addressed 64 urgent messages by cable to 25 Governments, appealing for the Government's protection of the right to ‘ life of the individuals concerned and requesting information concerning those ‘ allegations. OEeaa Governments are: Afghanistan, Brazil , Bulgaria, China, Colombia, El Salvador, Ethiopia, Guatemala, Honduras, India, Indonesia, Iran (Inlamic Republic of), Iraq, Israel, Mexico, Nepal, Nigeria, Peru, Philippines, Romania, South Africa, Sri Lanka, Sudan, the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics and the United States of America. 14. Replies were received from the following Governments: Brazil, China, Colombia, Guatemala, India, Indonesia, Iran (Islamic Republic of), Iraq, Israel, Mexico, Peru, Philippines, Romania, Sudan and the United States of America. 15. In addition, replies were received from the following six Governments concerning the cables sent by the Special Rapporteur during 1989: Brazil, China, Mexico, Sri Lanka, Sudan and the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics. 16. OEese messages and the replies received are su.'noearized in chapter II; the full texts are available for consultation in the Secretariat files. I I) Requests for information concerning alleged summary or arbitrary executions 17. The Special Rapporteur also sent 61 letters to 45 Governments concerning alleged sunmiary or arbitrary executions in their countries, as follows: Bangladesh, Brazil, Burkina Faso, Cameroon, Chad, China, Colombia, El Salvador, Ethiopia, Ghana, Guatemala, Haiti, Honduras, India, Indonesia, iran (Islam ic Republic of), Iraq, Israel, Malawi, Mali, Mauritania, Mexico, Morocco, Myanmar, Nepal, Niger, Nigeria, Papua New Guinea, Paraguay, Peru, Philippines, Senegal, Somalia, South Africa, Sri Lanka, Sudan, Suriname, Syria, Tunisia, Turkey, the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics, Venezuela, Yugoslavia and Zaire. 18. Replies ware received from the following Governments: Bangladesh, Brazil, Burkina Faso, Ethiopia, Honduras, Indonesia, Iraq, Malawi, Mauritania, Mexico, Papua New Guinea, Peru, Philippines, Sri Lanka, Turkey, the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics and Yugoslavia. 19. In addition, replies were received from the following 10 Governments concerning the allegations transmitted by the Special Rapporteur during 1989: Brazil, Chile, Colomb!a, Indonesia , Philippines, Sri Lanka, Venezuela and Yu gosl. via , C. Joint hearing s on southern Afr ica 20. The Special Rapporteur joined the Ad Hoc Working Group of Experts on southern Africa for hearings held n London, United Kingdom, from 20 to 24 August 1990 The information obtained at the joInt hearinga s reflected In chapter II, eect on B (paragraphs 454ff3
E/CN.4/1991 136 page 4 II. SITUATIONS A. General 21. OEe information received by the Special Rapporteur in the course of his present mandate includes allegations of executions or deaths which may have taken place in the absence of the safeguards designed to protect the right to life embodied in various international instruments, such as the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights (arts. 4, 6, 7, 9, 14 and 15), the Standard Minimum Rules for the Treatment of Prisoners, the Code of Conduct for Law Enforcement Officials, the Convention against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment, and Safeguards guaranteeing protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty adopted by the Economic and Social Council in resolution 1984/50 of 25 May 1984 and the effective prevention and investigation of extra—legal, arbitrary and summary executions, adopted by the Economic and Social Council in resolution 1989/65 of 24 May 1989. B. Country situations Afghan is tan 22. On 7 hay 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of Afghanistan concerning Seyed framra, son of Seyed Mahboob, who had reportedly been sentenced to death by a Special Revolutionary Court in April/May 1988 for his alleged involvement in an armed confrontation with the Government. It was reported that there was no judicial review of sentences passed by the Spec!al Revolutionary Courts, and concern was expressed that his execution might be imminent. 23. OEe Special Rapporteur, referring to articles 6 and 14 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights to which Afghanistan was a party and also to safeguards 5 and 6 of the annex to Economic and Social Council resolution 1984/SO of 25 Nay 1984 entitled “Safeguards guaranteeing protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty”, appealed to the Government to make every effort to guarantee the right to life of Seyed Hamza and requested information on the above—mentioned case and, in particular, on the legal proceedings according to which this person had been sentenced to death. 24. At the time of preparation of the present report no reply had been received from the Government of Afghanistan. Bangladesh 25. On 9 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Bangladesh tranamittLng allegations that n 1988 and 1989 a number of persons died in police custody as a result of torture. It ias saLd to bc rare that i part!a1 invest fgations were carried out by the authorities and that criminal charges were brought against security forces personnel.
— . . . . .. . . .- . . - er2t i . , . . . E/CN.4 1l991/36 page 5 26. OEe Special Rapporteur received information on alleged cases of death in detention as follows: (a) On 2 June 1989, in Jessore District, Shahidul Islam died at the district hospital shortly after he was admitted to the emergency ward. Reportedly, Shahidul Islam was arrested from hi] home in Bare Bail flange village on 31 May 1989 by the Kotwali police, Jeasore district and was tortured at the Kotwali district police station by a police sub—inspector and other police personnel before being taken to hospital. According to a post—mortem report, his death wan caused by “trauma in different parts of the body”; . (b) On 7 February 1990, in Jessore District, Wazed Ali died at Kotwali police station as a result of torture. According to thu official explanation, he connitted suicide while he was in police custody; (c) In late June 1989, a person named Ofazuddin, from Laduakunda village, Dhamrai District, was arrested and detained at the Dhamrai police station where he was tortured by a police sub—inspector during the interrogation. Ofazuddin died in Dhaka Medical College hospital a month later. A jud icial inquiry was reportedly held on 27 September 1989, but the outcome was not yet made public; (d) In June 1909, Khoka Mia, from Mukuddapur village, Kaharol sub—division, was arrested, together with several others, and detained at Kaharol police station, where he died as a result of torture. It was reported that eight policemen were charged for assault and murder at the Kaharol Sub—Divisional Magistrate': Court. OEe outcome of the trial was not known at the tiixie of the receipt of the allegations; (e) On 17 July 1988, in Kughtia, Kushtia district, Kumaresh Ghosh died at the Kushtia Sadar Hospital. According to the report received, he was apprehended and beaten by two policemen and a night watchman on 15 July 1988 while on his way home from a hotel where he had worked and was again beaten nd kicked at the local police station before being taken to the main police station. OEe result of the post—mortem conducted on 17 July 1988 was not made public, According to the police, Kumaresh Chosh died as a result of heavy beating by the night watchman, who had absconded. 27. On 16 July 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Bangladesh to the Special Rapporteur's above—mentioned coirmication, stating that the allegations were baseless. The reply gave the Government's account of each case as follows; (a) Shahidul 1515141: The deceased Shahidul Islam wag arrested on 30 May 1989 in a criminal case for illegal possession of weapons (guns). During the detention, Shahidul Islam told the law—enforcement officials that he had been sufferIng from tuberculosis for some time and accordingly was sent to th ho;pltal In Jt crt for medIcal treatment; He died in hospital on 2 June. His father and his brother corroborated this fact. OEe post—mortem report said “theta was no Injury or trauna on h I s body” and the report wag submItted to the judicIal magistrate who confirmed the veracity of the post— mortem report. Though there was no evidence of misbehaviour on the part of the police officer, Faruqul Islam, he was, transferred from the Kotwali police station by the police adm nLatratLon; .
E/CN.6/199l 136 page 6 (b) Ofazuddin: Ofazuddin wan arrested on a charge of murder on 30 June 1989. During the time of his arrest, he tried to escape but the angry public caught him. An a result of violence Ofazuddin was injured. OEe police sub—inspector sent him to the sub—divisional hospital for medical treatment on 1 July 1989. OEe medical officer recommended Ofazuddin to be sent to Dhaka Medical College hospital for adequate medical treatment. He was in the Medical College hospital from 1 July to 17 July. On the submission of a written application by his father, Ofazuddin was granted bail and released. He died on 7 August 1989 under the care and attention of his father and close relations; (c) Khoka Mia: OEere was a robbery at the homestead of Mr. Afazuddin in Mukandapur of Kaharol nub—division. After a lapse of several days, the police, on secret Information, arrested on 6 June 1969 !IIoka Mia along with six others. OEe police officials were rather rough and manhandled the accused, including Khoka Mia. Since Khoka Mia was suffering from high blood pressure, he was not feeling well and was sent to Kaharol hospital for treatment. On 7 June, he was again transferred to Dinajpur district hospital for further treatment. He died on 9 June in the hospital while undergoing treatment. The incident was reported to the higher police authorities and they inmiediately suspended and released all police officials — five officers and eight others — from service and constituted a judicial Inquiry under section 176 of the Penal Code. OEe case is under investigation by the judicial magistrate; (d) Wazed Ali: Wazed Ali was arrested on charges of robbery. During the time of his arrest, the public got very emotional and violence took place which caused injury to Wazed Ali. He died a few days after he had been sent to Jessore hospital for medical treatment; (e) tumaresh Chosh: Kumaresh Chosh, accused of theft, was caught on 15 July 1988 by an angry mob. As a result, Mr. Ghosh was injured and was sent to Kunhtia Sadar hospital for treatment on the same day. He died on 17 July 1988 in hospital. The suspected culprit who had injured Mr. Ghosh has since absconded. 28. It was stated that the above clarifications would clearly show that none of them died in custody as a result of torture. It was further stated that in spite of the beat intentions and the conmiitment of the Government, there were unavoidable situations which would arise due to the emotions of an angry public towards offenders, particularly in a developing country, where poverty often results in social tensions accompanied by violence and counter—violence. OEe Government, to the extent possible, would try its best to spread consciousness about basic human rights and fundamental freedoms among its citizens, many of whom were illiterate. 29. On 23 May 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of Brazil concerning two priests, working in the south of Pa M state, who had allegedly been threatened wLth death. AccordIng to the InformatIon, Fr. Robert Vallecourt, French pariah priest of Nova Maraba, had been threatened on 30 Apr Il 1990 by the secretary of public works for Maraba municipality that he would be killed by the end of the year. Fr. Paulo Joanil, another priest and co—ordinator of the church land corruniasion for Maraba region, had allegedly left the region
E/CN. 6 1l99l 136 page 7 temporarily in December 1988 after the assassination of a state deputy in Parai. He had reportedly been under death threats because of his efforts to bring to trial those responsible for the killing of a 42—year—old man and his S three—year—old son in a land dispute in Goianesia, Pars, in October 1987. It was further alleged that many of those appearing on “death lists”, drawn up by landowners, had subsequently been killed, without the authorities having taken steps to investigate the death threats or protect those threatened. Many of these killings were said to have been carried out with the acquiescence of the local authorities. Recent examples of such killings allegedly included Altenir Carvaiho, aged 31, a trade unionist leader of the Piquia estate, Maraba, shot dead on 24 March 1990 and a posseido named Domingos shot dead on the Jandais Estate, in Curionopolis municipality 1 in April 1990. 30. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur, having taken note of the position of the Government of Brazil expressed in its previous conanunicationa addressed to him that only those cases in which Government officials were actually involved were considered as suimnary or arbitrary executions , reiterated his view in this regard that the Etate hs the primary responsibility to ensure that the right to life of those under its jurisdiction is protected in every possible manner. OEerefore, he appealed to the Government to take all necessary measures to protect the safety of the persons concerned, and requested information on the measures taken to protect the above—mentioned priests and also on the investigation carried out by the authorities on these cases. 31. On 14 June 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Brazil concerning four persons who had allegedly been threatened with death since March 1990 in Zapuri, Acre state. OEey were said to be: Ilzaxnar Mendes and Jos Alves Mendes Neto, respectively widow and brother of Francisco Mendes; Jorge Gomes Pinheiro, President of Xapuri rural workers trade union; and Francisco de Assis Monteiro de Oliveira, President of the Kapuri rubbertappers' co—operative. 32. According to the information, two persons had been indicted for the murder of Francisco Mendes and were awaiting the jury trial scheduled to take place in Xapuri in June 1990. Since March 1990 when relatives of the accused persons had arrived in Xapuri, the number of threats against the above—mentioned four persons and others, including witnesses and potential jurors in the trial, had allegedly increased. 33. OEe Special. Rapporteur also referred to information he had received regarding trade unionists from several towns in Acre state, including Brazileis, Xapuri and Rio Branco, who had been threatened with death for the attempt by the rural workers union to prevent deforestation in areas decreed to be under special Government protection. OEe names of nine persons among those trade unionists who had been threatened with death were transmitted. 34. In this connection, the Speciil R pporteur, emphasizing the fact that the State has the primary responsibility to ensure that the right to life of those under !ts Jur!sdLct!on !s protected in every possible manners therefore appealed to the Government of Brazil to take all necessary measures to protect the safety of the persons concerted and requested information on the measures taken by the Government to protect the above—mentioned persona and also on the investigation carried out by the competent authorities in this regard.
EICN .411991 136 page 8 35. On 6 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Ooverrment of Brazil transmitting the following allegations: (a) During the past year several persons were killed in incidents implicating the direct or indirect involvement of the police force. The following case was reported: Ci) On 14 October 1989, Francisco Ecliodo Bezzera da Silva, aged 24, and his brother Francisco Berminio Bezzera, aged 21, rubbertappers in Manuel Urbana, Acre state, were taken Lnto custody by five police officers. OEe two were then taken by the police officers by canoe down the river Purus. The two men had not been seen since and the police reportedly gave contradictory explanations, first saying that the two men had committed suicide by throwing themselves into the river, and later that the canoe overturned and the two had drowned. However, witnesses reported that they saw the police rowing downstream in the canoe claimed to have been lost. Another witness reportedly saw a body floating in the river. OEe authorities were said to have opened civil police and military police inquiries into the alleged incident and related allegations of ill—treatment by the police, but the outcome of the inquiries had not been made public; (b) Several persons were killed or threatened by gunmen hired by landowners in connivance with the local authorities. No effective measures were taken by the authorities to protect the life of those under threat or to arrest the perpetrators, and local police gave support to or tolerated the activitiec of groups known as lusticeiros to the extent that the groups used official police vehicles for their operations. Several examples of such cases were reported as follows: Ci) On 22 April 1990, in Rio Maria, Pars state, four armed men in plain clothes claiming to belong to federal police abducted three brothers, Orlando Canuto Pereira, aged 25, Jos& Canuto Oliveira, aged 27, and Paulo Canuto Oliveira, aged 19. Having been handcuffed, the three brothers were driven 60 kilometres north of Rio Maria. The kidnappers then shot at them, injuring Orlando Canuto Pereira who managed to escape and killing on the spot Jos6 Catuto Oliveira and Paulo Canuto Oliveira whose bodies were found on 23 April 1990. Prior to the above incident, on 3 April 1990, also in Rio Maria, Pard state, Brat Antonio de Oliveira and Ronar Rafael Centura were killed in the same manner after having been kidnapped by gunmen using the same car; (ii) On 30 April 1990 in Vfia Alice in Diadema, a town on the outskirts of Sa' Paulo, Marcello Rosa de Oliveira, aged 17, was stopped by a group of armed men in civilian clothes and was shot dead along with his older brother, t4arcos Rosa de Oliveira, aged 18. One hour later the same day and four kilometres away from the place of the above killings, Alexandre de Oliveira, aged 21, Andre de Oliveira, aged 18, Marcello Conceive de Oliveira, aged 15, Osmar Zago Fiiho, aged 15, En1iliano Fig?iereido de Souza, aged 21, and Edilson dos Santos were forced by a group of four or five men to lie face down on the ground and were shot. Five of them were instantly killed and Edilson dos Santos was badly wounded;
El CN .4/1991/36 page 9 (iii) On 2 June 1990, in Santa Fe, near Maraba, Pad state, Sebastiao Francisco da Buys, aged 51, leader of the Union of Rural Workers of Maraba, was shot dead by two men in civilian clothes outside his home. Pa Silva had played an important part in defending the rights of a group of 85 peasant families to remain on the land inside the jazent Ponrada. INCRA, the government land agency, had granted the families permission to stay on the land in question. The manager of the ja.teud.a Donrada was taken into custody by police and questioned about the killing, but the outcome of the investigation by the local police was not known. 36. On 13 July 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Brazil concerning Raimundo Barros de Oliveira, a peasant, and Father Martin Murray, parish priest of Colinas, who had been threatened with death in Tocantins state. According to the information, a local landowner accused of having killed Raimundo Barros de Oliveira's brother, Jos , on 2 February 1990, was alleged to have publicly stated that he would kill the two men. Although the landowner was said to have confessed to having killed Jos Sarros de Oliveira and to have threatened other peasants, he had been released front custody and was reported to move freely about the locality. Father Martin Murray was said to have been threatened in 1987 by a gunman and a military polIce sergeant for the help and advice he had given peasants in regard to a land dispute. 37. The Special Rapporteur added that since April 1990, armed gunmen allegedly contracted by the above—mentioned landowner had been threatening members of Raimundo flarros de Olive!ra's community in the municipality of Guarai, in connection with a land dispute which the State appeals court had ruled in favour of the peasants. Despite complaints to the local authorities regarding these threats, there appeared to have been no action taken to prevent further assaults on the peasants. 38. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government of Brazil to take all, necessary measures to protect the safety of the persons concerned and requested information on the measures taken by the Government as well as on the investigation carried out by the competent authorities in this regard. 39, On 10 August 1990, a cable waa.aent to the Government of Brazil concerning Jocimar Borjes Pa Silva, aged 18, who had reportedly been arrested on 20 June 1990 by two officials of the civil police in Ipatinga, State of r4inas Gerais. lie had been accused of theft but had denied the charge, as a tesult of which he had allegedly been brutally ill—treated. l ie had been released the next day, but the two officials had allegedly been threatening to kill him since his release. 40. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to S take all necessary measures to protect Jocimar Borjes Pa Silva and requested any information on the measures taken by the Government to protect the above—mentioned person and, in particular, on the investigation carried out by the authorities on this case,
E/CN.4/ 19 91 136 page 10 41. On 5 November 1990, a letter was sent to the Government Qf Brazil transmitting the following allegations: (a) It was reported that a recent study by the Brazilian Institute for Social and Economic Analysis revealed that death squads were responsible for most of the violent deaths of 457 children or adolescents killed in three Brazilian cities in 1989. In April 1990 the Rio de Janeiro police department reportedly admitted that half the city's identified squad members were police off!cere. Furthermore, members of the police on duty reportedly shot dead in a swmnary manner suspected petty criminals, often destitute street children or adolescents. rt was also reported that during the period of 45 days up to 15 June 1990, in the “ABCD” region in Sa Paulo, 37 killings by vigilante groups, known an justi eiros , were registered. In Recife, in the first three months of 1990, 144 cases of killings by death squads were reported. The following examples are illustrative of the allegations received: (i) On 5 December 1989, Simone Aiuaral Cerqueira, aged 17, and Disney Erwin Rodrigue, aged 18, were found dead with sign s of torture on a waste—tip on the outskirts of Nova Friburgo, Rio de Janeiro state, after hav ing been abducted by five men in plainclothes, four of whom were later identified as members of the military police. Criminal proceedings were reportedly initiated against two military police officers, but the trial is allegedly not foreseen before 1991; (ii) In February 1988, in the shanty town of Corto Oito in Duque de Ca3cias, Rio de Janeiro state, two teenage brothers, Aldenir Calisto Mendes and Magno Fernando Mendes, were abducted from their home by armed men claiming to be police. OEey were found shot dead next morning. It was alleged that the police was reluctant and slow to act, although their mother contacted the police immediately after the abduction. Their brother, Evandro Sergio Mendes, aged 19, allegedly implicated in the shooting of a military police officer, was shot dead on 2 January 1989; (iii) On 23 November 1989, in saa Paulo, Marcelos Domingos de Jesus, aged 19, was shot dead in the metro by two military police officers. Although the police reportedly claimed that he had touched his belt in such a way as reaching for a gun, the boys who had been with him at the time of the killing claimed that one of the military police officers entered the metro carriage firing his revolver and that Marcelos Domingos de Jesus was hit in the head by a bullet; (iv) On 22 March 1990, in s S Paulo, Tchai da Silva Ferreira, aged 14, was shot in the head when the police fired from an unmarked police patrol car which had been following the car carrying Tchai da Silva Ferreira and his friends. He died in hospital three hours later; Cv) On 25 March 1990, in Rio de Janeiro, Adriana Ones Zago Buenes, aged 17, was shot dead by a police officer while she was riding pillion on a motor cycle. It was reported that when the driver did not stop at the police officer's signal, the police officer drew his gun, took aim and fired, hitting Adriana in the back;
E / N. 4 / 1991 / 36 page 11 (vi) On 25 October 1989, in Bel tn, Par state, Jeremias de Souza Santos, aged 17, a mentally retarded deaf—mute, died in hospital after having been found suffering from convulsions. He bad allegedly been arrested one month earlier by military police in Muan , Pard state, and tortured with electric shocks in the police station for suspected membership in a youth gang which had been robbing local shops and businesses; (viL) In May 1990, in the Greater Sa Paulo area, seven youths were killed by justiceiros . The seven were named as: t'larcello Roffia de Oliveira, Marcos Rosa de Oliveira, Alexandre de Oliveira, Andre de Oliveira, tiarcello Goacalvo do Oliveira, Osmar Zago Filbo, Emiliano Figueiredo de Souza; I I) On 25 June 1990, Mario Davis, aged 19, and Daini o Mendes, aged 39, two Macuxi Indians from Jib6ia mztOE a, in the village of Santa Cru :, Roraima state, were allegedly killed by two hired gunmen while they were herdIng pigs. Before the killing, it was reported that the Macuxi community warned the authorities that gunmen had been threatening Indians with violence but that no action had been taken by the authorities. It was alleged that during the past years Macuxi Indians had been harrassed, threatened, arrested and beaten by police and employees of a landowner in the context of land disputes. 42. On 16 November 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of BrazIl concerning Manoel Pereira da Silva, Director of the Rubbertappera, Smallholders and Rural Workers Union (SINPASA) of Rio Branco and other rubbertapper leaders in Acre state who had continuously been receiving death threats which had intensified as the trial approached of two men accused of murdering rubbertapper leader Chico Mendes on 22 December 1988. 43. According to the information received, Manoel Pereira da Silva had been receiving threats since July 1990 for his leadership role in attempting to stop deforestation by large ranch owners and lumbermen in and around the Figueira extractive reserve near Rio Branco. Requests for protection to the Governor's office and the State Secretary of Public Security wore said to have been denied on the grounds that there was no proof of any crime being committed, It wn a1 o reported that in mi d—Sept ember , after informing the federal police of the thrnta, titnoel. Pireira da Bilva went into hiding in Rio Branco. 4t, Furthermore, the Special Rapporteur referred to the information he had received according to which Wolmer do Nascimiento, Rio co—ordinator of the Movimiento Nacional DOS Meninos e Meninas da Rua (National Street Children's Movement), and his two children, Ana Teresa do Nascimiento, aged 2, and Wolmer do Nascimiento Filho, aged 3, had received death threats since October 1990. On 5 November 1990, an unidentified man in plainclothes had reportedly approached him on Duque de Cazias Street and put a gun to his back, warning him to stop his activities on behalf of Street children and to stop denouncing death—squad killing of minors in the Rio de Janelro metropolitan region. It has also been reported that activities of the death squads were supported or particIpated in by local police and that local and state authorities had been slow to InvestIgate or prosecute suspected death squads crimes.
, 2 / CN.4 / 1991136 page 12 45. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government of Brazil to take all necessary measures to protect the safety of the persons concerned and requested information on the measures taken by the Government to protect the above—mentioned persons as well as on the investigation carried out by the competent authorities on these eases. 46. On 29 November 1990, further to the above—mentioned communication, a ot ter cable was sent to the Government of Brazil stating that accordin.r n the info matlon received, a the trial of the accused assassins of rubo3rtap i leader Chico Mendes was scheduled to begin on 12 December 1990, death threats against rubbertapper leaders in Acre state had intensified, including those against Osmarino Amancio Rodrigues, Jos6 Pereira d i i Sliva, Abraao dos Santos Cardoso and Amarildo Simedon. In the ease of Osmarino Amanclo Rodrigues, president of the Rural Workers Trade Union of Brasilela and secretary of the National Rubbertappers Council, who had been receiving death threats for more than a year, state authorities had reportedly refused to pay daily costs of police guards assigned to protect him. 47, In this connection, the Special Rapporteur reiterated his appeal to the Government of Brazil to take all necessary meaeures to protect the above—mentioned persons and requested information on the measures taken by the Government to protect the persons concerned as well as on the investigation carried out by the authorities on these cases. 49. On 8 January 1990, a reply Was received from the Government of Brazil to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 30 October 1989 (see E/CN.4/1990/Z2, paras. 43 to 46) on the cases concerned. 49. According to the reply, those allegations continue to be under the consideration of the competent Brazilian authorities. OEe reply reiterated the Government's understanding that, notwithstanding the truth of the allegations and without prejudice to the findings of the Brazilian authorities, it considered as an alleged summary or arbitrary execution only those cases in which there was actual involvement of a Government official. SO. On 22 August 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Brazil to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 13 July 1990, stating that with regard to the situation of Mr. Raimundo Barros de Oliveira and Father Martin Murray, both of whose lives had allegedly been threatened in the town of Guarai, State of Tocantins, the Minister of Justice had sent a communication to the Secretary for Public Security of the State of Tocantins calling for the inmiediate adoption of measures to ensure the protection of the life and physical integrity of the two individuals. 51. On 8 November 1990, a reply was received from the Government of . .... F to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 5 November 1990 stating that th. .:. transmitted had been brought to the attention of Brazilian authoritiet. 52. Wtth regard to the case of Simone Cerqueira Amaral, aged 17, the rapt ) stated that the four military police involved in her killing were brought individually to trLal and two were sentenced to three and a half years' and two and a half years' imprisonment.
E/CN.4/199l/36 page 13 53. On 28 November a further reply was received from the Government of Brazil to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 5 November 1990 and his cable of 16 November 1990, referring particularly to cases of killing of minors or those working for their protection. The letter stated that in the case of Wo lmer do Nascimento, co—ordinator of the Movimiento National do g Meninos e Meninas da Rua (National Street Children's Movement) and his family, the Ministry of Justice and the authorities of the State of Rio de Janeiro were requested to provide protection for Mr. Nascimento and his family. 51;. It was also stated that following an extraordinary session of the Brazilian Council for the Defence of the Rights of the Ruman Person (CDDPR) on 21 November 1990, a conunission was net up, entrusted with studying and proposing within 30 days ways to better integrate and co—ordinate activities of official governmental bodies and non—governmental entities with a view to adopting concrete measures to combat violence against Brazilian minors. 55. On 29 November 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Brazil to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 16 November 1990 regarding alleged death threats received by members of the Rubbertapper's Union of Rio Branco, Acre state, Manoel Pereira da Silva, Osmarino Amancio Rodrigues, Jos6 Pereira da Silva, Abraao don Santos Cardoso and Amarildo Simedon. It was stated that the Minister of External Relationa had requested the Ministry of Justice to provide information and to take all necessary action by the Federal Government to ensure their protection. 56. On 7 December 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Brazil to the Special Rapporteur t s cables of 16 and 29 November 1990, in addition to the information transmitted by the Government, stating that the Ministry of Justice had asked competent authorities in the State of Acre to provide information on the steps taken to ensure the physical integrity of the members of the rubbertappera union allegedly under threat of death and to take the necessary measures to provide protection. 57. On the same day, a further reply was received from the Government of Brazil to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 5 November 1990 transmitting information on two of the cases communicated in that letter. 58. According to the reply, the Council for the Defence of the Rights of the Ruman Person (CDDPH) had made inquiries into alt the cases and at the same time had requested state Governors and other authorities to provide information on any investigations made at the state level into these cases. 59. With regard to the case of Jeremias de Souza Santes, the Secretary of Public Security of Pars state reported that investigations conducted by the ParA State Civil Police had proven the allegations of death as a result of torture by military police in Muan&, ParA state, to be groundless. 50. As regards the cases of M&rio Davis and DainiTo Mendes, indigenous people of the Macucf from Jiboira, Roraima state, $.t was stated that the Fundacro Nacional do Indio — FUNAI (National FoundatIon for the Indian) had confirmed the allegatSons and that the case was under investigatIon by the Federal Police;
E/GN.4/199 1/36 page 14 61. On 12 December 1990, another reply was received from the Government of Bratil to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 29 November 1990 transmitting information regarding efforts made by the Acre state authorities to protect the life of Osmarino Amancio Rodrigues, Secretary of the National Rubbertappers Council. 62. It was stated that authorities of Brasil6ia had requested Mr. Rodrigues to hold talks on measures to protect his life, but that he had left the region without informing the authorities. Police were instructed to look for him with a view to reaching with him an understanding regarding his security. 63. It wae also stated that the Ministry of Justice again requested Acre state authorities to take all necessary steps to protect Mr. Rodrigues. Bulgaria 64. On 16 !larch 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of Bulgaria concerning persons named Elm Madzharov, Altsek Chakarov and Says Georgiev who had reportedly been sentenced to death on 25 April 1988 by the Supreme Court of Bulgaria for their involvement in bomb explosions in 1984 and 1985 which resulted in the death of eight persons, and who had allegedly not been allowed to appeal to a higher tribunal against their conviction or sentences. 65. OEe Special Rapporteur, having received new information that the three above—mentioned persons might be facing inuninent execution, referred to his previous cable of 11 May 1988 concerning the above—wentioned persons and expressed his concern for their life and appealed to the Government to take all, possible measures to ensure that their right to life was protected. l ie also referred to the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights to which Bulgaria was a party, in particular article 14, paragraph 5 of the covenant providing that “Everyone convicted of a crime shall have the right to his conviction and sentence being reviewed by a higher tribunal according to law”, and requested any information on those cases. 66. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Bulgaria. krkina Faso 67. On 11 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Burkina Paso transmitting allegations that following a coup attempt on l B September 1989, four persons accused of being the leaders of the coup plot were suninarily executed. OEe four were named as follows: Conunander Jean—Baptiste Lingani, Minister for Popular Defence and Security and First Vice—President of the Popular Front, Captain Henri Zongo, Captain Koundaba, Chief of the Military Transmission Service, and Sergeant Gningni, aide—de—camp of Coimiander Lingani. 68. On 5 November 1990, another letter wee sent to the Government of Burkina Paso transmittIng a1lcgat ons that in early January 1990, Gu llaenie Sessowna, a teacher at the University of Ouagadougou and director of the Institut du D ve1oppement Rural 1st Burkina Paso, died as a result of torture in unacknowledged detention after having been arrested on 21 December 1989. Guillaume Sessouma was reportedly among a group of 31 people arrented in December 1989 in connection with an alteged conspiracy
E/CN.4/1991 136 page 15 against the Government. Although the Government reportedly claimed that four, including Guillauxne Sessouma, had escaped from detention, unofficial reports claimed that Seseourns's body was not taken by security officials to a hospital in Ouagadougou in early January 1990, but taken away to the Conseil de l'Entente building in the capital. 69. Ott 19 December 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Burkina Faso to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 11 July 1990, stating that the aim of thote who had undertaken the coup on 18 September 1989 was to overturn the national consensus that had been established since 15 October 1987 and to obstruct the constitutional order of the country. It was also stated that Comander Lingani and Captain Henri Zongo, instead of expressing their dissenting views, had resorted to a military operation which was unsuccessful , 70. It was further stated that in so far as the army was concerned, a competent court martial was seized with the case and that thc court martial had made a judgement and delivered the sentences, which were eventually executed. Came roan 71. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Cameroon transmitting allegations that in previous years, several prisoners had died due to harsh conditions in the central prison of Yaound6, such as malnutrition and denial of medical treatment. 72. OEe Special Rapporteur referred to the information received according to which in December 1989, Captain Madam Dogo Aboubakar and Adjutant Pagor6, both imprisoned in connection with a coup attempt in 1984, had died in Nkondengui prison after ill—treatment and subsequent denial of medical treatment. OEeir bodies allegedly were not returned to their families. 73. Furthermore, the Special Rapporteur transmitted allegations that three persona, Ryacinthe Ebod6, Raymond Menga and Dialer Onana, were sentenced to death by the Nilitary Court for attempted murder and aggravated theft. The date of their conviction was said to be unknown. The military courts did not recognize the right to appeal to a higher tribunal. 74. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Cameroon. Chad 75. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Chad transmitting allegations that during the past eight years, a considerable number of prisoners, who had been accused of opposing the Government, died in custody as a result of torture, malnutrition or lack of hygIene and medIcal attention or were executed secretly wIthout any legal proceedIngs. 16. OEe Special Rapporteur gave reported cases as follows: (a) Saleh Gaza, a journalist, who was arrested in June 1987 and detained at the camp des martyrs , died in early 1988 in custody at another location as a result of ill—treatment;
E/CN.4/l991/36 page 16 (b) Asseila Ibrahim died in November 1998 due to a miscarriage which was said to be the consequence of torture inflicted upon her during detention at the Direction de is Documentation et de la s4curit6 (DDS) in N'Djamena; (c) 8ichara ChaOEo, former Deputy Director of the DDS, who had fled the country in late 1986, was executed without trial in September 1988, 10 days after he was forcibly repatriated from Togo. 77. In addition it was alleged that following an attempted . jjg by Zaghawa army officers in April 1989, Zaghawa villagers were au inarily killed by Government troops during military operations in the north—eastern part of the country. It was further alleged that 100 members of the Zaghawa conununity were arrested during these operations and that a number of persons were executed secretly and without any legal proceedings, shortly after their arrest. 78.' Furthermore, in the same north—eastern part of the country where armed oppositlon groups belonging to the Froht Patriotique du Salut du Tchad (FPST) were active, in particular since October 1989, both civilians and Government soldiers were reportedly killed in March and April 1990 by Government forces in the border areas close to Sudan. 79. OEe Special Rapporteur described the following incidents: (a) On 27 March 1990, when Government forces recaptured the towns of Saha and Tine from the rebel forces, many of the several hundred soldiers, who had been captured and left behind when the rebel forces retreated, were executed by Government forces, because of their alleged surrender without fighting; (b) On 29 March 1990, in the town of Kouttoum in Sudan, Government forces executed seven injured men, suspected members of the rebel forces, in the courtyard of the hospital where the seven had been treated; (c) On about 6 April 1990, in the town of Iriba, some 24 civilians were sumarily executed after Government forces recaptured the town from the rebel forces. OEose killed included Take Hussein and Noura Markoli, two sisters—in—law of Idriss D6by, the FPST's leader; Taille Ejamous and Fatimi Haroun, the sister and niece of Ha ns en Djamous, a Zaghawa leader killed in April 1989; Mahamat Haroun tasa and Hussein Zakaria. 80. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Chad. Chile 81, On 28 February 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Chile to the Special Rapporteur's letters of 24 July and 30 October 1989 (see respectively E/CN.4/1990/22, paras. 76 and 77) transmitting the following infonnation on the casea submitted: (a) Antonio Oviedo Sandoval Cares: At approximately 9.00 p.m. on 30 August 1988, at the corner of Avenida Santa Rosa and Venancio Leiva Street, unidentified passengers in a bus shot at a group of persons gathered around a
. E/CN. 6/199 1/35 page 17 barricade and a bonfire at the Junction. One of the shots hit Antonio Oviedo Sandoval Cares in the head. lie was taken to S6tero del Rio hospital where he died at 9 a.m. on 31 August. In view of the circumstances, the forty—first “La Pintaja” carabineros station filed a report on the incident with the eleventh criminal court in San Miguel, and carried out investigations. As a result, the driver of the bus from which the shots which killed Sandoval Cares were fired, was placedat the disposal of the above court, It had not so far been possible to identify the persons who fired the shot;. Consequently; the version received by the Special Rapporteur did not correspond to the actual facts of the case, as no police personnel were present at the scene of the incident; I I) Enrique Abelardo Moraga Mi floz: At approximately 14.30 a,m, on 10 December 1988, a corporal of the Directorate—General of earabineros was the victim of a theft conmiitted by Hariano Antonio Espinoza NCdlez, who snatched his wristwatch from his left hand. The corporal fired two shots into the air in order to stop the thief and managed to detain him. The detainee shouted f or help and a group of persona came out of a nearby house and attacked the police officer, who identified himself as a carabinero and fired further shots into the air in a vain attempt to deter his aggressors. In view of the immediate physical threat he again fired in self—defence and hit Enrique Abelardo Horaga M (zi oz, who died on the spot. OEe circumstances of 1*. Noraga M oz's death were being investigated by the eighteenth criminal court; the case was at the pre.-trial stage; (c) Jaime Qui1 n Cabezas: On 29 December 1988, three carabineros went to the Eatrella do Chile settlement, Pudahuel municipality, in response to a radio message from the local police station. On arrival they found the corpse of Jaime Antonio QuiOEn Cabezas , who had died from a wound in his back, caused by a bullet which had lodged in his body. OEe identity of the person who fired the shot is unknown. arabineros were not present when the incident took place, as alleged in the Special Rapporteur's letter; (d) Cuillermo Eugenio Rodriguez SolS.s: On 20 December 1988 an armed skirmish took place in front of No. 369 Manuel Rodriguez Street in Santiago between two groups of persons, one of which included Rodriguez Solis, who died from gunshot wounds in his thorax and abdomen. When the nrabineros were informed of the incident, they immediately reported it to the second military court in Santiago on the same date; (e) Jorge GerS.n Maldonado Vel&zquez: On 20 January 1989 two carabiner from the Pablo Silva Pizarro local police station were patrolling in the Nuevo Amanecer settlement, where tension was particularly high, when they came upon a group of persons who started to throw atones at them, while simultaneously fleeing from the spot. The carabineros gave chase but were not able to apprehend them. Subsequently, on the orders of the unit covering the sector, the earab lneros went to a home where they found Jorge CeriIIn Maldonado Vel izquez, suffering from a bullet wound, Mr. Maldonado Vel zquez died while be!n taken to hospital. This incident led to a complaint being lodged with Santiago Nilitary Court alleging that the two carabineros employed unnecessary violence. liewever , .t has been established that at no time did they use their firearms, although it had so far not been possible to identify the person responsible for the crime. The carabineros in question made statements in connection with the proceedings before the fourth military proaecutor'a department, and no evidence had been found to implicate them;
E/GN.4/1991/36 page 18 (f) Jecar Neghme: At 9.40 pan. on 4 September 1989 personnel from P2—466 (radio patrol car), under the orders of a sergeant of the No. 30 radio patrol station went to investigate gunshots in the block between Bulnes Street and Alameda Bernardo O'Biggins. OEey found a person lying on his back on the pavement. An identity card showing the name of Jecar Antonio Neghnie Cristi was found on the corpse. OEere were 19 gunshot wounds in different parts of the body, and according to information provided by the murder squad of the Chilean Police Department, 12 of the gunshot wounds had been made by 7,65—ems bullets and the remainder wero exit holes made by the same bullets, which had been the cause of death. Pamphlets bearing the inscription ] “Par traici6n a is. hicha revolucionarip v al vueblo amar i l lo bunt” (For betraying the revolutionary struggle and tha yellow bourgeois people), were found next to the corpse, whose clothes contained several documents notifying ] the victim of meetings of his political, group. Accordingly, the 3rd central police station reported the murder by shooting to the 4th criminal court in Santiago which was investigating the case. OEe radio patrol officers who went to the scene of the crime only reported the death of Neghme Cristi and the fact that the scene of the crime was deserted. Consequently, the cirab lneroc had no evidence that the “surrounding buildings were under the control of armed men in civilian clothing”, as alleged in the letter sent by the Special ] Rapporteur; (g) Salvador Fidel Cautivo Ahumada: At approximately 10.20 p.m on 31 December 1988, carabineros personnel went to the Tucapel roundabout in Arica, where a group of 10 individuals were painting Connuniat Party slogans. When they arrived the persons in question fled, while another unidentified group of individuals opened fire on the policemen from the upper part of the roundabout. OEe arnh.iner i returned fire with their own weapons in self—defence, and shot at their aggressors although they failed to hit them. As a result of this incident, a sergeant of the 3rd Arica a intj station suffered serious gunshot wounds. Subsequently, the 22—year—old sister of Salvador Fidel Cautivo Ahumada, 26 years of age, brought him to the local ] emergency unit. Mr. Salvador Fidel's chest had been pierced by a gunshot wound from which he died in hospital. It was ascertained that Salvador Fidel And his two sisters had been painting the slogans mentioned above when, according to their own statements, shots were fired at them as they fled from the AkijzQI, from a coffee—coloured Sports Wagon pickup, which was passing by. OEe brother was hit by one of the shots; I I) Edison Freddy Palma Coronado: This person died at approximately 8.30 p.m. on 30 August 1989 on Avenue Grecia at the Ictinos intersection, during a street demonstration, as a result of gunshots fired by unidentified civilians from a private vehicle. The complaint filed with the 4th military prosecutor's department was lodged against persons responsible, and no accusation has been made against the carabineros in connection with the crime. OEe incident was connected with an attempt by a crowd to storoe a local house, and when carabineros arrived at the scene they merely took down a complaint that a person had been killed as a result of the incident. Consequently 3 the allegatIon made in the Special Rapporteur's letter that the person in question “was mortally wounded by a police offLer”, i not a true reflection of the facts,
- - - — - -- - - - EICN.41 1991/36 page 19 2hin 82. On 27 February 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the ‘ Government of China referring to his cable of 10 June 1988 (see E/CN.4/1990/22, parse. 68 and 69) and to his letter of 26 April 1989 (see Z/CN.4/1990/22, paras. 83 and 84), in which he mentioned the case of a person named Lobsang Tenzin, who- had reportedly been arrested in connection with the killing of a Chinese policeman during the demonatrat on on 5 March 1988, and who was said to have been sentenced to death on 19 January 1989, with suspension of execution for two years. 83. As the two—year period of suspension ended on 5 March 1990, two years after his alleged crime, the Special Rapporteur received expressions of concern that Lobsang Tenzin might be facing irtuninent execution. He also reiterated his previous appeal to the Government to take all measures to protect the right to liE a of tobcang Tenzin 1 in view of the allegation that before and during the trial the defendant had not been provided with the safeguards intended to ensure the tights of the defendant including the right to be presumed innocent until proved guilty, the right to a fair and public trial by an independent and impartial tribunal, the right to have adequate time and facilities for the preparation of his defence and the right to examine or have examined the witnesses againn him. 84. On 28 May 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of China concerning three Tibetans named Migmar Tashi, Dama and Dhundup Tsering who, according to an official announcement on 18 May 1990, had been sentenced to death on 17 May 1990 by the Lhasa City Intermediate People's Court for “organizing a prison escape scheme in a planned way”. It was also reported that while the death sentence on Dhundup Isering had been suspended for two years, the death sentences on the other two had been to be executed Jsaediately, and that articles 96 and 103 of the Chinese criminal code provided that those who conunit the counter—revolutionary offence of organizing a jailbreak may be sentenced to death when the harm to the State was especially serious and the circumstances especially odious. 85. According to the allegations received by the Special Rapporteur, the proceedings in the court had not guaranteed the rights of the defendants as provided for in article 14 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, although the Chinese criminal procedure might have been strictly followed. OEese rights included: the tight to a fair and public hearing by a competent, independent and impartial tribunal established by law, the right to legal counsel, the right to examine, or have examined, the witness against him and to obtain the attendance and examination of witnesses on his behalf under the seine conditions as witnesses against him, the right not to be compelled to testify against himself or to confess guilt, and the right to his conviction and sentence being reviewed by a higher tribunal according to law. 86, In th!a connection, the Special Rapporteur, having received express ions of concern about the fate of the above—mentioned two persons, requested information concen!ng the two and in particular regarding the trial proceedings by which the three Tibetans might have been sentenced to death. 87. On 1 November 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of China transmitting the allegatSons contained in the following paragraphs ,
E ICN .4/1991/36 page 20 88. On the basis of Chinese media reports it was alleged that over 720 death sentences were imposed between January and August 1990 and in 650 cases stay of execution was not granted. A total of 350 death sentences without stay of execution were reportedly given in June and July shortly after the start of an anti—crime campaign. Over 270 executions were reported to have seen carried out. Official statistics on the death penalty and the exact number of executions reportedly have not been made public. Some of those sentenced to death were said to have been paraded around cities in the back of trucks. In this connection reference was made to a Circular of 24 July 1984 of the Supreme People's Court entitled “On the Strict Interdiction to Parade in the Streets When Carrying Out Death Sentences”. It was also reported that death sentences were announced at mass rallies and that the convicted persons were often executed immediately afterwards. 89. According to some reports, the criminal code provides for the death : penalty for 38 offences, including those which do not necessarily involve the use of violence, such as smuggling, theft and embezzlement. In July 1990, new regulations reportedly added as capital offences the production, distribution, smuggling or selling of “obscene products” in quantity. 90. It was alleged that the judicial procedure did not ensure the guarantees for a fair trial and the protection of the rights of the defendant. OEm was said to include the practice known as “verdict first, trial second” which consisted in “adjudication committees”, set up in each court to supervise judicial work, examining cases and taking a “decision” before a formal trial was held. OEe adjudication committees were reportedly made up of judicial officials and Party members. OEe principle of the presumption of innocence as provided for in article 14 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights allegedly was not ensured in thin practice. In addition, political considerations were reported to have interfered in the activities of courts which were said to have little discretion in deciding on punishment, once charges against a defendant are formulated. Reference was made, by way of example, to a sentencing guideline in robbery cases, issued by central institutions including the Supreme People's Court and the Supreme People's Procuratorate, making the death penalty mandatory, whereas under the Criminal Law, the death penalty is not a mandatory punishment. 91. It was further alleged that defence lawyers were not made available in the majority of criminal canes and that in death penalty canes, lawyers were constrained by the strict time limit set under the 1983 decision amending the Criminal Procedure Law, concerning the delivery of the bill of prosecution, sununons and notices and also for appeals against a judgement. In practice, lawyers reportedly had no more than one or two days to study the details of a case and to meet the defendant. OEe lack of independent status of lawyers was allegedly also a factor contributing to the lack of fair trial proceedings; 92. Further to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 26 April 1989 and its annex conta n ng a summary of allegations concerning the incidents in March 1989 in Lhasa, Tibet Autonomous Region, additional information was received concerning the same incident. Accord Ing to the informat cn, a report of 11 March 1990 from the Public Security Bureau and the TIbet ililItary District Command to the Autonomous Party Committee indicated that over 450 T lbetana were kIlled as of 10 March, the majority of them as a result of bullet wounds. It wan alleged that the authorities deliberately created condItIons conducive to the
El CN . 41 1991/ 36 page 21 punitive exercise of armed force by the security forces, in particular by the People's Armed Police, that on the morning of 5 March 1989, the Armed Police were instructed to arrange for agitators to burn down named buildings and that on the morning of 6 March, the Armed Police were instructed to kill anyone resisting arrest without further consideration. 93. On 16 January 1990, a reply was received from the Government of China to the Spec Ial Rapporteur's cable of 2 November 1989 (see ElcN.4119901Z2, paras. 98 and 99) stating that the Decision regarding the procedure for prompt adjudication of cases involving criminals who seriously endanger public security, a law passed at the second meeting of the Standing Committee of the Sixth National People's Congress of the People's Republic of China on 2 September 1983, was a supplement to the Criminal Procedure Law, It provided that in cases of criminals who cause explosions or conunit murder, rape, robbery or other crimes seriously endangering public security and who are punishable by death, where the main facts of the crimes are clear, the evidence is conclusive and the popular indignation is exceedIngly great, the restrictions provided in article 110 of the Criminal Procedure Law regarding the time limit for the delivery of a copy of the bill of prosecution and the time limit for the delivery of the auxmnons and notices may be overstepped, and that the time limit for an appeal or a protest against a judgement shall be changed to 3 days from 10 days. It was also stated that it was so decided because the main facts of the crimes committed by the aforementioned criminals could be easily and quickly verified and ascertained and some criminals were caught red—handed, hence the unlikelihood of misjudgement; it was therefore possible to have such cases tried promptly. According to the reply, this procedure was not applicable to cases which are complicated and where the main facts of the crimes are not yet entirely clear. It was stated that criminal cases, other than those provided for by the Decision, were still to be handled in line with the procedure stipulated in the Criminal Procedure Law and that while shortening the time—limit for the delivery of the bill of prosecution, sununons and notices as well as the time limit for appeal and protest, the Decision by no means deprived the defendants of their rights to defence, appeal and all other rights of litigation which they would enjoy according to law during the criminal proceedings. 94. It was further stated that In mid—June last year, in handling the two vicious cases which took place in Beijing and Shanghai, the Procedure of Prompt Adjudication was adopted, because the accused in both cases had committed crimes in broad daylight and also because their crimes were serious and evidence was conclusive, that the adjudication of the two cases was in full conformity with the lawn in China, and that the legal procedure was strictly followed. It concluded that the problem of “interference from political bodies” simply did not arise. 95. On 17 January 1990, another reply was received from the Government of China concerning the unrest in March 1989 in Lhasa, Tibet Autonomous Region, stating that the aim of the rioters was to use violent means to break up China and to destroy its ethnic harmony. It was alic stated that after quelling the riot, the judicial authorItIes of Tibet arrested and brought to trial some 400 people, that over 300 were released after re—educatIon and that 63 criminal elements were given sentences. However, according to the letter, not one wan executed and the claim that some Tibetans were suimnarily executed for taking part .n poitttcal activities was absolutely groundless. . —
— — - — - E/GN.4/199 1/36 page 22 96. On 20 March 1990, a reply was received from the Government of China to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 27 February 1990, stating that Lobsang Tenzin who participated in the Lhasa riot on 5 March 1988 was the chief murderer of Tibetan policeman Yuan Shisheng and was thus sentenced to death with a two—year reprieve by the Lhasa People's Court of the Tibetan Autonomous Region on 19 January 1989 and that the trial was carried out strictly according to the Judicial procedure of the country. It was stated that the allegation that Lobsang Tenzin might be facing inmtinent execution was groundless. 97. On 1 August 1990, a reply was received from the Government of China to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 28 May 1990, stating that Migoear Tashi and Dama were sentenced to death with a twa—year suspension of execution for intentional homicide in August 1987 and April 1988 respectively by the Intermediate People's Court of the Lhasa Municipality of the Tibet Autonomous Region, that Dhundup Teering was sentenced to death for rape and homicide in September 1983 by the Intermediate People's Court of the thasa tunicipa1ity of the Tibet Autonomous Region, and was later resentenced to death with a two—year reprieve and that in January 1986, his sentence was changed to life imprisonment according to a criminal Judgement by the Righer People's Court of the Tibet Autonomous Region. 98. It was stated that while serving prison terms for suspension of execution or life imprisonment, Miginar Tashi, Dama and Dhtmdup Tsering, in collusion with other criminals, organized clandestine jailbrealcs on a number of occasions, that following trials by the Higher People's Court of the Tibet Autonomous Region, a criminal judgement was made on 7 May 1990 in accordance with the provisions of article 46 of the Chinese Cr i minal Procedure Law and paragraph 2, article 133 of the Chinese Criminal Procedure Law, and that Migmar Tashi and Dama were executed. It was also stated that according to the provisions of articles 23, 53, 63, 96 and 103, the Intermediate People's Court of Lhasa municipality of the Tibet Autonomous Region sentenced Dhundup Tsering to death with a two—year suspeniion of execution for committing the crime of organizing jailbreaks on 14 May 1990. 9. It was stated that China had not yet acceded to the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights and was not bound by the provisions of the Covenant. However, according to the reply, the rights of criminal defendants under the Covenant are fully embodied in China's criminal law and criminal procedure law and related laws. It wes stated that the trials of the above—mentioned three cases were conducted strictly in accordance with the procedure process as provided in the Chinese criminal law and criminal procedure law, fully ensuring the rights of procedure of the defendants. Colombia 100. On 1 March 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of Colombia concerning death threats against Father Guillermo Correa, a priest at El Charco, Nari o department, and leader of the local civic movement, and the journalIst Jim Preston, also a leader of the movement, secretary of the fluenaventura Human Rights Committee and candidate in the March 1990 municipal elections, whose names were reported to have appeared in a list of persons to be murdered in mid—February 1990. AccordIng to the information, in the preceding few months, several members of the civic movement had been threatened and one of them, Segundo Olaya, was murdered on 15 Febr u ary 1990.
- -—— E/CN.4/1991/36 page 23 101. OEe Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take all measures at its disposal both to protect the lives of the above—mentioned persona and to ensure that the killing was investigated, and requested information in that regard. 102. On 26 March 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Colomb Ia concerning the allegation of the murder by hired killers of Dr. Jarainillo Ossa, Patriotic Union Senator and candidate for the office of President of the Republic, and of about 70 members of this Party during the first three months of 1990. According to the information, in the case of Dr. Jaramillo, the hired killers had entered the airport in Bogota carrying weapons, despite the searches to which passengers had been subjected by the security forces. 103. In his cable, the Special Rapporteur also referred to the information that over 1,000 members of the Patriotic Union had been killed since its establishment. 104. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to make every possible effort to protect the life of the members of this Party, and asked for any information on the investigations into the case of Er. Jaramillo. 105. On 29 March 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Colombia concerning death threats against Jorge Alberto Restrepo P&rez, Mayor of Segovia, Antioquia, and the other inhabitants of this town. According to the information, on 28 February 1990, municipal employees had caught a person in civilian clothes as he had been writing out one of these death threats. He had also been carrying documents which had identified him as a soldier in the Bombona battalion stationed outside the city. OEat night, uniformed soldiers had allegedly been seen painting the walls with slogans that threatened the inhabitants with a repetition of the November 1988 massacre if they voted for Patriotic Union candidates in the congressional and municipal elections. Local authorities were said to have requested the Government attorney to send a conm ission to Segovia to investigate these threats. 106. OEe Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take all measures at its disposal to protect the lives of the above—mentioned persons and requested information in this regard. 107. On 17 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Colombia transmitting allegations that in the grave situation of violence in the country during the first six months of the year a large number of parsons were killed, including members of leftist political groups, unions, peasant and indigenous leaders. The responsiblity for a majority of the killings was attributed to the Government, either for having directly participated or for not having taken the necessary measures to prevent such killings or sanction those responsible. * 108. The phenomenon of kIllLngs by hIred assassIns paid by drug traffickers continued to be reported, particularly in heavily militarized zones where traffickers allegedly counted on military acquiescence. . . . .
E/CN.4/ 1991/36 page 24 109. During the first three months of the year no fewer than 112 persons were victims of political assassinations. Cases were reported as follows: (a) Carlos Pizarro Leong6mez, presidential. candidate, was assassinated at 9.15 a.m. on 26 April 1990 by an individual with a machine gun minutes after his plane took off from the Bogot& airport. The was on a campaign trip, and waned of a possible attack, had taken a flight two hours later than originally scheduled; (b) Father Tiberlo Fernandez, aged 40, priest in Trujillo, disappeared on 17 April 1990 with three other persons on his way to mass in Tulua. On 23 April his body was found, decapitated and with signs of torture. He had previously received death threats for his activities in support of peasant families of detainees/disappeared by the military; Cc) Bernardino Prieto, aged 55, member of the Patriotic Union (UP) Eugenio Prieto; Roracic Prieto; Jacinto Zea, aged 60, member of the UP; Jos Antonio Zea; Ornery Montoya, member of the UP, inhabitants Ariari, department of Meta, were detained on 24 February 1990 in their homes by approximately 15 men dressed in military uniforms and two dressed in civilian clothes and assassinated. Eyewitnesses claimed to have seen the assassins leaving the Twenty—first Battalion Vargas attached to the Seventh Army Brigade based in Villavicencio, Neta; Cd) Fredy P rez, aged 15; Jaime Eeltr n, aged 17; Etiecer Suarez, aged 20; Sa ul Ortiz, aged 22, four members of the indigenous community Patio Bonito on the San Andr&s de Sotavento, C6rdoba reservation, were detained on 24 January 1990 by 10 uniformed policemen in the presence of eyewitnesses. OEe following day their bodies were found with signs of torture in the community of Cacaotal on the road between San Andr6s and ChirII. The cane was reported to the Attorney—General; Ce) Diana Cardona Saldarriaga, lawyer, member of the Patriotic Union, mayor of the Apartado municipality, was abducted on 26 February 1990 from her parents' home in Medellin by armed men who claimed to be her bodyguards who had come to escort her to the plane to return to Apartado. The true bodyguards of the DAS arrived shortly after. Her body was found the same day on the road outside Medellin. She had previously received death threats from paramilitary groups from Urab& region; CE) Mauricio Ramirez, Camilo flotero and Nohra Ituiz Fi6rez, three members of the Patriotic Union, were killed on 28 February 1990 at a funeral for Diana Cardona Saldarriaga in Unguia City, department of Choc6, only metres away from the regional military base where soldiers took no action to avoid the killings or detain those responsible; (g) Silvia MargarLta DuIIn Saenz, journalist, correspondent for the BBC; Jos Var aa tiateus, peasant leader, member of the Peasant Association of Carare; Miguel Barajas, peasant leader, member of the Peasant Msociation of Carare; Sa l Casta eda, peasant leader, member of the Peasant Association of Carare were killed on 26 February 1990 by armed men believed to belong to a paramilitary organization who shot them in a restaurant In La IndIa, Cimitarra municipality, Santander. Ms. Duz n was interviewing the peasant leaders at the time;
F E/CN.4/l99 1/36 page 25 (h) Marisela Margarita Cuello Villamil , aged 17, Venezuelan citizen and Jos Julio Tehenin, aged 24 were killed on 10 November 1989 by armed men dressed in civil4an clothes in Caceri. municipality in the El Bagre militarized region of Antioquia department. Military authorities claimed they were killed in an armed confrontation. Mrs. Cuello had been detained on 23 January 1989 by army members who accused her of belonging to a guerrilla group and later released her without charges; Ci) Domingo Galu n Jim4nez, Juan Bautista Diaz Ortiz, Edgar flenitez and Osvaldo Enrique Osuna were killed on 7 January 1990 by approximately 15 members of a paramilitary group in the Pueblo Nuevo Plaza, Necoc l. municipality, UraiM, who opened fire on a group of Popular Front Party members campaigning for the municipal elections; (j) Leriberto Espinoca, member of the Uni6n Sindical Obreva of Antioqu ia, member of the Popular Front, was assassinated on 15 December 1989 as he was leaving the union offices in tiedellin. He had been an active negotiator for the banana workers of Urib region in the National Union of Agro—indus try Workers. 110. On 25 July 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of Colombia concerning Mrs. Elvia Urdn, aged 60, and Mrs. Martha Luz Saldarriaga V6lez, a lawyer, both members of the “H&ctor Abed G6mez” Permanent Committee for the Defence of Human Rights (CPDDH) of Medellin, Antioquia, who were alleged to have received anonymous telephone calls threatening them with death if they continued their human rights activities. Serious concern was upressed for the lives and the security of these people since, according to the reports, three successive presidents and one member of the CPPDH had been assassinated in 1987 and 1988, while another had disappeared and 15 had received death threats. 111. OEe Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take all measures at its disposal to protect the right to life of the two persona threatened with death, and requested information in this regard. 112. On 13 August 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Colombia concerning Nelson Pinz6n Guevara, a 26—year—old farm worker, who had been arrested on 17 July 1990 at La Colorada peasant community, municipality of Simocota, department of Santander, by members of the army's Nueva Granada battalion based in Barrancaberineja. According to the information, three days later he was shot and wounded and then taken to San Rafael de Barrancabermeja hospital, where he was held incommunicado and under military guard, and was not permitted to see his relatives or other persons. 113. It was further reported that this man's brother, Alonso Pinz6n Guevara, was arrested and killed on 16 July 1990 at La Colorada by members of the above—mentioned battalion. 114. Fears were expressed for the lLfe and safety of Nelson P nz6n Guevara owing to the executIon of his brother, and also because he had received several reports from members of the rural conununities that they had been forced by the army to take part n armed operations as guides and that some of them had been killed in clashes with guerrilla groups.
E IrJN.4/199l 136 page 26 115. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take all measures at its disposal to protect the life and the security of Nelson Pinz6n Guevara and requested any information on the investigations carried out by the competent authorities in this regard, and La particular on the killing of Alonso Pinz6n Guevara. 116. On 9 November 1990, another letter was sent to the Government of Colombia transmitting allegations of 67 killings and one attempted killing since April 1990. The victims were reported to be mainly union members; peasant and indigenous leaders and other unarmed civilians in regions where guerrilla groups were act&ve. 117. OEe following cases were alleged to be attributable to paramilitary groups acting under orders of or with the connivance of the military. (a) Union members (i) John Jairo Galindo and John Edward Fandiflo Correa, members of the National Union of Farmworkers (SINTRAINAGRO), who had been seen in a restaurant in BogotA on 16 May 1990, found dead on 17 May 1990; (ii) Julio C6sar Arias Castaflo, director of the Centro de Servicios Docentes del Municipio de Bolivar (Centre of Educational Association Services in the municipality of Bolivar) and member of the Asociaci6n de Institutores de Antioquia, Central Unitaria de Trabajadores de Colombia (AIDA—CUT) Teachers t Association of Antioquia, Confederation of Colombian Workers, killed on 6 June 1990 on a public bus en route to Medellin; (iii) Am&rico Torres Ibargu n and Claudio Benitez; members of SINTRAINAGRO—CUT and farm workers on the La Caridad plantation, separated from the other farmworlcers and shot dead on 6 June 1990; (iv) Pedro Pablo Ospina, member of the Uni6n Sindical Obrera (USO—CUT) and labourer on the Eznpresa Colombiana de Petr6leos (ECOPETROL) (Colombian Petroleum Industries), killed on 6 June 1990 by a hired killer in Cali Valle as he boarded public transport. He had survived a previous attempt on his life in 1988; (v) Silvio Valencia Medina, member of the Asociaci6n de Institutores del Cauca (ASOINCA—CUT) (Teachers Association of Cauca), killed on 7 June 1990 in PopayAn, Cauca; (vi) Joaquin Galindo Orozco, member of the Movimiento Frente Popular, (Popular Front Movement), and Eugenio Galindo Orotco, Also a member of the Popular Front Movement and secretary of education of a chapter of SINTRAINAGRO—CUT, killed on 6 June 1990 by hired killers in their home in the municipality of Apartado, Antioquia; (vii) H ctor Mario L6pez, Secretary—General of the Sindicato de Trabajadores de las Empresas EtOElicas de Call, (SINTRAENCALI—CUT), (Union of Public Sector Workers of Call), killed on 18 June 1990 in his home in Cali;
EJCN.4/ 199 1/36 page 27 (viii) Apolinar Fabra, secretary of solidarity of SINTRAINAGRO—CUT, Carepa chapter, killed on 8 July 1990, killed in the workers' encampment of the Calicia Plantation in Carepa, Antioquia; (ix) Jorge Alberto Echeverry and Emilio Copete, members of the Asociaci6n de Institutores de Antioqule (ADIDA—CUT) (Teacher's Association of : Ant loqula), killed on 15 July 1990 in Medellin; (x) Alvaro G6mez Padilla, superintendent of education for the Monteria district, member of the Sindicato de Meestros (ADEMACOR—CUT) (Teachers' Union), killed on 15 July 1990 in his home in Monteria, C6rdoba; (xi) Bani6n Rern&nde and Fredy Enrique Mejia, members of SINTRAINAGRO—CUT, Puerto Wilches chapter , labourers at the Palmas Bucareli Company, taken by hired kLllers on 17 July 1990 from the company building; (xii) H&ctor Castro, Rogue Jim&nez and Leonel Sumaque, farmworkers on the La Alameda Plantation and members of SINTR.AXNACRO—CUT, ambushed on 24 August on their way to work in Chigorod6 , Antioquia; (xiii) Roel Alvis, member of SINTRAVLORES—CUT, detained by members of the F—2 Sn August 1990 in Ibagu6, Tolima. His body was found in Espinal, Tolima; (xiv) Esteban Palmet Dominguez, director of the Middle School Institute in Apartado , Antioquis, killed on 26 October 1990 by hired killers while on his way home; (xv) Luis Eduardo Calder6n, member of the Sindicato de Trabajadores Agricolas Cundinamarca, (Farmworkere Union of Cundinantarca) Ricaurte chapter, and member of the Uni6n Patri6tica (UP), (Patriotic Union Party), killed on 27 October 1990 by hired killers art a street in Apartado, Antioqu ia; (xvi) Pablo kttonio Gonzflez, member of SINTRAINDUPAI.NA—CUT, and his driver, John Jairo Gdmez, killed on 25 October 1990 in San Alberto, C6aar; (xvii) An attempt was made on the life of Leopoldo Calder6n, labourer at the Centro de Producci6n de Ecopetrol, (Production Centre of ECOPETROL) and member of the Central Unitaria de Trabajadores de Colombia (CUT) (Confederation of Colombian Workers), on 9 September 1990 tn El Llanito, after his name had appeared on a : blacklist known as “La Cots Negra' t . (b) Other caaes of kflhin ( !) Henry Delgado, Luis Antonio Meza and Beatriz Elena M ndez, peasants, residents of Magdalena Medto; Santander, had been detained on 4 September 1990 and interrogated cancernLng their political actSvItiea. Meza was released but Delgado's body was found, with
E/CN.4/1991/36 page 30 120. Furthermore, again in October and in the same region, several persons were reported to have been threatened and/or murdered by suspected members of the police or groups acting with the connivance of the armed forces. In particular, the bodies of Francesco Sapizabal, Luis Ciaskier and Jorge Ocaxnpo from CalL had reportedly been found on 16 October 1990 in the Rio Cauca with signs of torture. Walter Jaramillo Gonzalez, the doctor who had participated in the search and examination of the bodies, had also received threats. ‘ 121. Lastly, information was received about the attack on Mr. Antonio Rico Morales, president of the board of the Cocicoinpa co—operative, on 25 October 1990 at a village near Tulua. 122. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take all measures at its disposal to investigate these cases and, in particular, to protect the life and the security of Father Rafael Martinez Mora, and requested any information on the measures taken as well as on the investigations carried out by the competent authorities in this regard. 123. On 5 January 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Colombia to the Special Rapporteur's letters dated 13 March 1989, 24 July 1989 and 6 October 1989 (see document E/CN.4/1990/22, paras. 116 to 120, para. 125 and para. 128, respectively) concerning the following cases: (a) Francisco Mantilla Ojeda and Benjamin Sotelo: OEe case continued in the Fourth Court of Criminal instruction of Ibagu6 to determine the possible responsibility of the two individuals detained; (b) Jos Ivan Muflos and Fidel Rojas: Proceedings were initiated and the investigation continued in Court No. 68 of Criminal Instruction of Chigorod6; Cc) Alejandro Cardona Villa: The First Prosecutor of Medellin initiated an initial inquiry; (d) Luis Eduardo Yaga Cr stancho: The case continued in the Fourth Court of Public Order of Villavicencio, where the First Prosecutor informed the Attorney Delegate for Human Rights that William Gdngora, who had confessed to the killing, was assassinated after having been released. A number of suspects in the killing of G6ngora were detained; Ce) Libardo Antonio Rengifo Vargas: The First Court of Public Order found that the killing of Rengifo Vargas was motivated by personal matters and was therefore not a political killing, and remitted the case on 19 June 1989 to the Sixth Court of Criminal instruction in Chinchi II where the investigation continued. l2t., On 11 January 1990, another reply was received from the Government of Colomb Ia to the Special Rapporteur's letters dated 24 July 1989 and 6 October 1989 (see document E/CN.A/1990/2, para. 125 and pan. us, respectively) concerning the following cases: (a) Josh Joaquin Vergara Bohorquez: The judge of the Fourteenth Court of Criminal Instruction of Barrancabermeja, Santander, closed the investigation following the indictmcn . of one individual in the case;
El C I I .411991 / 36 page 32 128. In the Government's opinion, if cases such as the murder of Judge Diaz are characterized as a violation of human rights, then the criterion used is a subjective one and is mistaken. It therefore came as a surprise to the Government of Colombia that a death resulting from terrorist acts committed by drug dealers against the country's institutional stability could even be regarded as political honiicide. 129. On 19 March 1990, another reply was received from the Government of Colombia to the Special Rapporteur's letters dated 24 July 1989, 6 October 1989 and 20 October 1989 (see document E/CN.4/l990/22, paras. 125, 128 and 129, respectively) concerning the following cases: (a) Henry raite and Iv An Cdmez Ariza: An investigation was carried out by the Magda lena section of the Intelligence Group of the Administrative Security Department (DAS). According to the investigation, the death threats were carried out on 4 April 1989 by way of a note left at CUT union headquarters by members of a paramilitary group known as “Los Chanizos” or “Amigos de Santa Narta”. The investigation led to the capture of the head of the paramilitary group; (b) Omar Nieblea: Due to the death threats received by Mr. Niebles, a unit of the Government security services was offered for protection, but was withdrawn at the request of the union itself. Several units of the Magdalena section of the security forces were dispatched to provide protection for the various unions; Cc) Jorge Luis Garc&s Castillo: On 27 May 1989 the case was remitted to the Unit of Preliminary Inquiry of Bel6n, t rmbria where the investigation continued; Cd) Twenty—six street children killed in BogoU: A preliminary investigation was undertaken by the Attorney Delegate for Human Rights; Ce) Miguel Cardona and Gonzalo Casta o: OEe Attorney Delegate for Human Rights solicited the required protection for the lives of Messrs. Cardona and Castai o from DAS; (f) Omar G6mez Mann and Manuel Jos6 Zapata Carinona: OEe cases were before the ninety—eighth Court of Criminal Instruction of Belle, Antioquia, and subsequently were remitted to the Technical Corps of the Judicial Police for further investigation; (g) Gustavo de Jesus Mira Ramirez: In accordance with the information provided by the Attorney Delegate for Human Rights, the Fourth Court of Public Order of Medellin was proceeding with the investigation; ( i i ) Juan R Ivera: The Attorney General was informed that local authorities in Puerto Nan, Antioquia, had no knowledge of the death of Mr. Rivera and has thus directed inqu Iries to the author tLes of Puerto Berria and Cimitarra, where his death allegedly occurred; (i) Manuel Libardo Mat Navas, Wilson Mantilla and Arturo Salgado Car:6n: The Attorney Delegate for Human RIghts requested the National Directorate for Cr Iminal InstructIon for information regarding steps taken to ensure their safety;
El CN .4/1991 / 36 page 33 (j) Massacres of flonduras, La Negra and Punta Coquitos: Criminal proceedings were before the First Court of Public Order of Bogota and a special agent from the Office of the Attorney General was designated. Five individuals were in detention, and were char' ed as material authors of the crime. OEe substantial link between narcotics traffickers and crimes such as the present cases was established. Meanwhile, on 7 December 1989, an order was issued for the release from preventive detention of an army major and a lieutenant initially detained in connection with these cases. 130. On 27 March 1990, a communIcation was received front the Government of Colombia stating that on 2.2 March 1990, at 8.05 a.m., an attempt on the life of presidential candidate Bernardo Jaramillo Ossa took place as he was entering the domestic airline terminal at the El Dorado Airport of Bo&ot to board a flight to Santa Marts: Mr. Jaraniillio died two hours later at the police hosp ta1 where he had been taken. 131. It was also stated that the attempt on Mr. Jaramillo's l Ife was perpetrated by an unknown number of hired assassins, one of whom used a mini— Ingra m machine gun, and that Mr. Jaramillo's body guards reacted Immediately and opened fire on the assailants, one of whom was wounded, arrested and taken to the Fontib6n police station. 132. According to the communication, the arrested assailant from Medellin, Antioquia, had false identity papers and the State security agencies had preliminary information that would indicate that the Medellin drug cartel was responsible for the assassination. The Technical Intelligence Unit had some proof that would suggest that at least four persons took part in the shooting and that the plan had originated in Medellin. The hired assassins seemingly travelled from that city to carry out their plan against the leader of the Patriotic Union. It was stated that information gathered also suggested other planned attempts on the lives of certain public officials and well—known political figures, and that the use of hired assassins with a suicidal bent, the technique repeatedly used by drug—traffickers, would mean a greater risk to potential victims. 133. It was stated that the Government had ordered an Immediate investigation of the circumstances surrounding this hideous crime, which caused great dismay, and was determined that those responsible would receive the maximum penalty . 134. On 10 July 1990 a reply was received from the Government of Colombia to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 1 March 1990 stating that, in the case of Jim Preston and Father Guillermo Correa, according to an investigation carried out by the Administrative Security Department (DAS), no facts existed indicating that death threats had been made. It further stated that Father Correa himself affirmed that while he had been verbally attacked by several people, no concrete death threats had been made. It stated that, nevertheless, the investigation would contInue. 135. On 18 September 1990 another reply was received to the Special Rapporteur's letter dated 24 July 1989 (see E/CN.411990/Z2, pan. 125) stating that the case of C6sar Arcadio Cer6n was under Investigation by the judicIal authorItIes.
s/cu .4/ 1991 / 3 & page 34 136. The letter also replied to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 13 August 1990 stating that on lB July 1990, Nelson Pinz6n Guevara, alleged by the military to be a member of the opposition group called Fuerzas Revolucionarias de Colombia (FARe) (Revolutionary Forces of Colombia), took part in an ambush of a patrol of the Nueva Granada military battalion in Santander department and was wounded. According to the reply, he was taken to the battalion where he received medical care. It also stated that Nt. Pinz6n voluntarily offered to lead the military troop; to the hiding place of the guerrilla groOp which had ambushed them, and during a subsequent armed confrontation was again wounded when he tried to escape military vigilance. It was further stated that Mr. Pinz6n was treated at the San Rafael hospital in Barrancabenneja under military guard, and that as of 30 July 1990, per order of a habeas cornus petition, he remains under the responsibility of judge Octavo Superior of Barrancaberineja. 137. With regard to Alonso Plnz6n Guevara, it was stated that he was killed on 16 July 1990 in an armed confrontation between the military battalion Nueva Grands and the Twelfth Front of the FARC to which Mr. Pinz6n belonged. 138, It was further stated that the Attorney Delegate for the Defence of Euman Rights ordered a preliminary investigatIon into these cases, demonstrating the Colombian authorities will to support human rights and fundamental freedoms. El Salvador 139. On 30 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of El Salvador stating that in 1989 and the first months of 1990 a considerable number of cases of killings were reported within the context of the internal armed conflict. Allegations transmitted were as follows: (a) Conejo flrtolo had been detained on 23 January 1989 by the Infantry Brigade of Marina and was found dead on 6 February 1989 with signs of torture; (b) Joa6 Joaquin V squez Gonz&lez, a member of the Agricultural Co—operative of La Esperanza, had been detained on 5 June by soldiers of the Third Infantry Brigade in Canton Las Lomitas and died on 20 June 1989 while in the custody of the I{ational Police of San Miguel. His body bore signs of torture. OEe National Commission for Human Rights informed his wife he had coimnitted suicide by hanging; (c) Lucia Cea Parada, had been detained between I and 2 July 1989 by a patrol of the Atlacat l battalion and soldiers from the Second Infantry Brigade in Siete Jovenes de Tres Ceibas and Camorepeque, Apopa, and was found dead after having secretly been buried by soldiers on 2 July; (d) lMctor Marroquin Miranda had been detained between 1 and 2 July 1990 by a patrol of the &tlacatl battalton and soldiers from the Second Infantry flrigade in Sine Jovenes de Tres Ceibas and Camorepeque, Apopa, held incommunicado between 3 and 11 July at the Second Brtgade barracks and died in a hospital on 13 July from internal injuries caused by the soldLers;
E/CNJ/1991/36 page 35 (a) Julio Bonito Escalante, a member of the El Tigre Co—operative affiliate of the Federation of Associations of Agricultural Production Co—operatives of El Salvador (FEDECOOPADES), was killed on 1 November 1989 by soldiers from the seventh military detachment (DM7) who opened fire on co—operative members; (f) Cecilia Rodriguez Rivera and Apolinario Miranda, both members of the Popular Movement of Chr st1tn Socialism, had been detained on 6 November 1989 by soldiers from the sixth military detachment (DM6) based in Sonsonate and were found dead on 7 November in Colonia Buenos Aires, Sonsonate; (g) Aparicic Campos Yuri Egson, a student at the University of El Salvador, had been detained on 8 November 1989 by the Nationai. Police and died in the Rosales hospital on 25 November 1989 as a result of beatings by members of the National Police; I I) Maria Angel Florea and Julia del Carmen Ponce, both members of the FEDECOOPADES, had been detained on 31 December 1989 near Ahuachap n by four armed men dressed in civilian clothes, who abducted them in an unmarked car with shaded windows, and were found dead bearing signs of torture an 11 Janaury 1990, on the highway between Santa Ana and San Salvador; Ci) Julian Rosales L6pez had been detained in February 1990 by soldiers from the Atlacatl battalion in Canton San Jos6 Cone:, Delgado City, San Salvador, and died as a result of torture while in the custody of the National Police. On 8 February his family was informed that his body was at the Isidro Men ndez police headquarters in San Salvador; (j) Armando Vladimir S&nchez, a four—month—old baby who had been detained with his parents by the National Police from 4 January 1990 until 12 February 1990, died on 18 February 1990 as a result of treatment received while in police custody; (10 Efrain Cabrera Quintanilla and Cristina Alvarez de Cabrera, both members of the National Organization of Indigenous Salvadorians (ANtS), were killed on 10 March 1990 by soldiers of the DM7 in their residence in Canton La Hachadura, San Francisco ?1en ndez, Ahuach&pan; (1) Samuel J&rez P&rez, a member of AflIS, was killed on 10 March 1990 by an armed individual dressed in civilian clothing in El Rosario, Jujutla, AhuacMpan, after repeated death threats to members of ANtS; Cm) Roberto Vdzquez, President of the El Carmen Co—operative, was killed on 20 April 1990 by soldiers of the detachment of military engineers in the canton Despoblado, Zacateluca, department of La Paz. 140. Cases of unarmed c vI1ians killed as a result of indiscriminate air bombardments by the Salvadorian air force were reported as follows: (a) Carmen Rivera, aged 3; Valeriana Br gida Rivera, aged 2; Lorenzo Rivera, aged 11; Baudillo Hernkide:, aged 51; on 8 March 1989, in MoraMn province;
E/CN.4/ 199 1/36 page 36 (b) Dolores Maria Miranda, aged 10; Isabel L6pez, aged 10; Eeatriz L6pez, aged 2; Blanca Lidia L6pez Guardado, aged 3; Anibal Cuardado, aged 28, tt 11 February 1990, in the Corral de Piedra resettlement village i t t Lagunita, Chalatenango. 141. On 21 September 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of El Salvador stating that 73 political prisoners in Mariona prison allegedly feared for their lives and physical integrity because they had received a number of death threats since July 1990. OEese threats mentioned an alleged plan for the collective murder of political prisoners and for individual attacks. OEe death threats were reported to have been made by fattier soldiers who were serving sentences for ordinary offences, and by members of the security forces who came to the prison on visiting days. 142. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to protect the right to life, security and physical integrity of those who received death threats, and requested that the Government provide information on the measures taken in this regard. 143. On 9 November 1990 another letter was sent to the Government of El Salvador transmitting cases of 11.ings during the first eight months of 1990. Information indicatad an increase of incidents of killings compared to the number of killings during the previous year. The following are such cases reported to the Special Rapporteur: (a) Oswaldo Antonio Alfaro Estev6z, found on Zoulevard del Ej&rcito in San Salvador after having been detained in November 1990 by the Folicia de la Hacienda (civilian police); (b) Carton Lainez, aged 40, a union member, killed on 20 March 1990 by individuals identifying themselves as members of the air force as he carried out his construction work in Tonacatepeque, San Salvador; (c) Francisco S&tchez, a day worker, killed on the night of 22 May 1990 by soldiers of the 4th military detachment (DM4). OEe following day, an officer of the DM4 was said to have gone to his house with a group of soldi.ers to express regrets for the killing. No investigation of the case is known to have been initiated; (d) Jos& Luis L6pez L6pez, aged 2 and Manuel Angel Ldpez L6pez, aged 2, killed when indiscriminately launched military grenades hit their home in Los Fardos, Chalatenango, during a confrontation between the batall6n Chayguanca of the 4th infantry brigade, based in El Paraiso, Chalatenango, and the FMLM. 144. OEe letter also stated, in regard to the 16 November 1989 killings of the six Jesuit priests, their cook and her daughter (E/CN.411990/2, para 156 (c), that further information indicated a lack of co—operation on the part of the military in the investigation into the case by the 4th criminal court in San Salvador. It was further stated that the log—book regiatertng all entries and exits from the milItary school in San Salvador, considered crucial evidence in the case, had been burned on the orders of the lieutenant colonel of the military school, and that after h Is arrest he was freed on bail. Some high—level officers summoned by the court reportedly refused to testify while
E/CN.4/ 1991136 page 37 others allegedly falsified testimony. It was finally stated that a group known as the Alto Mando de los Escuadrones de Muerte (High Command of the Death Squads), allegedly threatened with death, in an April 1990 communiqu , all religious and civilian persons involved in the case if the members oE the armed forces implicated were not immediately released. 145. On 10 April 1990, the Special Rapporteur received a communication from the armed forces of El Salvador concerning the killing of second lieutenant Salvador Enrique Salazar Hern&ndez, on 6 April 1990, near the Coatepeque lake in Santa Ana province. It was stated that the assailants followed him, abducted him and killed him, and that he was completely disarmed when he was killed. It was further stated that the killers identified themselves as elements of the F74LN (Farabundo Marti National Liberation Front) after having riddled him with bullets , 146. On 11 April 1990, another conmiunication wa received from the armed forces of El Salvador describing the following further incidents of killings: (a) OEe murder of two members of the National Police while on duty, at a gas station in the capital city; I I) A car—bomb attack in Santa Tecla city on 2 April 1990 left six military and one civilian dead; (c) Indiscriminate attacks on civilians left several dead and injured, including Otto Sorto Mills, son—in—law of the air force commander; (d) OEe killing of Mrs. Mixima Adelaida Cotto, who was pregnant, during an FMLN attack on the Infantry First Brigade. 147. On 13 July 1990, a cormnunication was received from the Government of El Salvador relating the killing of Major Carlos Figueroa Morales by the group ‘flodesto Ramire&' belonging to the FNLN. 148. On 9 November 1990, a letter was received from the Government of El Salvador transmitting a press release dated 27 October 1990 which denounced an explosives attack by the FNLN on the armed forces high command in which two minors, aged S and 17, were allegedly killed. 149. On 26 November 1990, a letter was received from the Government of El Salvador transmitting a bulletin of the Office for Eurnan Rights of the Armed Forces dated 23 November 1990, stating that 13 civilians were killed between 19 and 20 November 1990 by the irregular forces of the FMII during their offensive launched on 19 November. Ethiooia 150. On 10 AprLl 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of. Ethiopia regarding the information received that six civilians had been killed in March 1990 in the village of Akhrur, AktleguzaL province. during an atr raid by Ethiopian halicopter gunsh pa which had sprayed cannon fire on the village, and that on 3 April 1990, in the town of Afabet and in the port city of Massawa, 16 and 30 civilians respectIvely had been killed in bombardments by Ethiopian fighter planes using cluster bombs and demolition bombs
E/CN.4/ 199 1/36 page 38 destroying residential buildings. The names of 13 identified victims among the 16 killed in Afabet and of 28 identified victims among the 30 killed in Massaws were also transmitted. fli. In vieit of the continuing tense situation of armed conflict in Eritrea, the Special Rapporteur, seriously concerned for the lives of innocent civilians and in particular those of women and children, appealed to the Govenunent to take all necessary measures to protect the lives of civilians who might be trapped in armed confrontations in the region, and requested information on the above—mentioned incidents and the measures taken by the Government to protect the lives of the civilian population. 152. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Ethiopia transmitting allegations that during the past several months, in the Eritrea region, a considerable number of civilians were killed during air raids over towns and villages carried out by Ethiopian fighter planes and helicopter gunships, indiscriminately dropping cluster and demolition bombs over residential and commercial districts. 153. In addition to the allegations already communicated to the Government, the following alleged incidents were described: (a) On 21 April 1990, in Afabet, six civilians were killed in an air raid by Ethiopian ?‘IIG fighter planes; (b) On 22 April 1990, in Massawa, 55 civilians were killed in an air raid by Ethiopian MIG fighter planes; (c) On 9 June 1990, in Asmara, a special army squad dispatched from the army base in Kagnew, Asmara, attacked a group of youths watching World Cup football matches on television in Kidane Mehret near the city centre, causing the death of 30 persons. OEe army reportedly stated that the youths had violated the curfew. 154. Furthermore, on 19 May 1990, 12 persons, former senior members of the armed forces who had been arrested following a attempt in May 1989, were reportedly executed after a trial by the military division of the Supreme Court. The names of the 12 were given. It was alleged that the accused were not given the right to appeal to a higher tribunal against their conviction and sentences nor the right to seek pardon. 155. On 4 December 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Ethiopia to the Special Rapporteur t s letter of 26 July 1990, stating that the allegations transmitted of indiscriminate attacks on the civilian population by Government forces were totally groundless and fabricated. According to the reply, with regard to the trial of the 12 senior officers, the proceedings were conducted fairly and in accordance with due process of law. It was stated that these officers, charged with the most serious crimes under the country's special penal code, were provided with a 11 legal protections essential for their defense. 156. It was also stated that apart from ensuring the legal rights of those officers who chose to engage defence counsels of their own, the Government, upon request from the others who - re ututh le to do so, had also provided competent lawyers to present rhei arcs al& defend them in Court.
- -———S- - - - - - - - E/CN.4t/1991 I36 page 39 157. It was stated that during the trial, which took over a year , the Court i t t the 26 sessions it held made painstaking investigations into the charges, and that its decision was based on 92 witnesses and 65 documents for the prosecution and 130 witnesses and 12 documents for the accused; furthermore, the trial was conducted in public. The execution was carried our pursuant to a final judgernent rendered by the First Military Bench of the Supreme Court and, as there was no higher tribunal than the Supreme Court, the accusation of denial at the right to appeal was incorrect. 158. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Ghana transmitting allegations that during the past year a number of persons were sentenced to death by the public tribunals for convictions of murder, of conspiracy to murder or of armed rubbery. OEe public tribunals, special courts, established in 1982 under the public tribunals law reportedly may impose the death penalty for of fences specified by the Provisional NationaL I7efence Council (PNDC) and in cases where the tribunal is satisfied that very grave circumstances meriting such a penalty have been revealed. Under the public tribunal law as amended in 1984, the national public tribunal tries cases itself and also can hear appeals agaInst its own decisions sitting as a national appeals tribunal, thus violating the requirement of art independent appeal procedure. Among those sentenced to death, nine persons were reportedly executed on 3 February 1990. The nine, whose names were not made public, had been sentenced to death in 1989 for their involvement in armed robberies and murders around Accra. 159. In addition, between January and March 1990, eight persons were reportedly sentenced to death by regional public tribunals. OEe eight allegedly included: (a) David Agudu, aged 26, sentenced to death by the Greater Accra regional public tribunal; (b) Azutey Tetegah, Raniani Abubakari end Abmed Drarnani sentenced to death by the national public tribunal in Aecra; Cc) Adriano Beu, a police corporal, sentenced to death by the regional public tribunal in the kong; (tO Two persons whose names were not made known, sentenced to death i. xai by the regional public tribunal in March 1990. 160. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Ghana. Guatemala 161. On 30 Januar r 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of Guatemala concerning Mgr. Jos Mercedes Carrera, vicar—general of the San t iarcos department d Iocese, who was reportedly threatened with death on 31 December 1989 by several armed men who burst into the presbytery, making a show of theIr weapons, while Mgr. Carrera was distributing food to needy children . 1
E / ON. 141199 136 pag.. 40 162. The Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take the necessary measures to protect the life of Mgr. Carrera and requested information on the case. 163. On 7 February 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Guatemala concerning Juan Luis Coy Monz6n, organization and media secretary of the Electrical Worker's Union (SflNDE), and his family. According to the information, on 22 January 1990, several men in civilian clothing visited Juan Luis Coy's home and, not finding him there, warned h!e w Ife “either he leaves the country or he will have to face the consequences”. Earlier, on 7 April 1989, the same persons had tried to kidnap his 12—year—old daughter who, thanks to her mother's help, managed to escape. 164. OEe Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take the necessary measures to protect the life of Juan Luis Coy tlonz6n and his family and requested information on the case. 165. On 9 February 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Guatemala concerning the deputy Mr. fl ctor Luna Troccoli who, in the week from 29 January to 4 February, had been threatened over the telephone. Me had allegedly been told “if you continue to talk about the debt and its repercussions in ... the country, you'll have to be careful because in Guatemala it is very easy to kill a deputy”. 166. OEe Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take the necessary measures to protect the life of Mr. H&ctor Luna Troccoli and requested information on the case. 167. On 28 February 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Guatemala concerning the persecution, often in the form of death threats and extrajudicial killings, suffered by persons who had refused to Join, or who had left, the civil self—defence patrols. According to the information received, these persons were described as “subversives”. OEis was reportedly the case of the residents of Sacpulup canton who, in the course of the month, had been seriously harassed by the army, and of Domingo Ventura, an indigenous farmer, member of the “Runujel Junsm” Council of Ethnic Connunities (CERJ) and a resident of the village of Pachalam in the municipality of San Andres Sajcabaja, El Quich6 department. 168. OEe Special Rapporteur also referred to the case of Factor t Mndez Donineili, director of the Centre for Luman Rights Research, Studies and Promotion (CIEPRODEL), and several members of his family who had reportedly been threatened with death. It was alleged that, in June 1989, a number of armed men in civilian clothing had threatened to kill the son of his brother Antonio and of Ana Graciela del Valle, and that, on 5 February 1990, a number of men who identified themselves as members of the National Police had searched the home of his brother Antonio in Guatemala CIty. On the same day various individuals had reportedly followed hIs wife in the street in a red vehicle with registration plate 2—156907, and on 19 February 1990, a number of persons had stolen the vehicle owned by Factor ittdez and regularly used by CIEPRODER. 169. The Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take the necessary measures to protect the lives of the above—mentioned persons and requested inform 2t ion on the cci es.
E / CN. 411991 / 36 page 41 170. On 6 April 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Guatemala concerning Pedro Castro Tojin, a resident of Centro Segundo Parraxtut canton, Sacapulas, El Quich , whose life might be in danger. 171. According to the information received, on 17 March 1990, a group of men in civilian clothing had attacked the dwelling of Mr. Castro, a member of CERJ, killing his wife and injuring him. The attackers included two military officers who had previously threatened the family. The officers had also made death threats against other residents of the town, causing 19 of them to flee. Complaints concerning these incidents were submitted to the justice of the peace of the town and the office of the attorney for human rights. Subsequently, these persons, accompanied by Mr. Amilcar M6ndez Urizar, president of CELl, and the deputy attorney for human rights of the region, tried to return to the community; they were unsuccessful an a group of about 25 armed men (apparently civilian patrol members led by military officers) fired shots at and threatened them. 172. The Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take the necessary measures to protect the life of the above—mentioned persons and requested information in this regard. 173. On 5 June 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Guatemala concerning death threats against Edgar Ren6 de Le6n Vega, a merchant, and Jos6 Eduardo Davila Rivera, a secondary—school student. According to the information, at 11.30 p.m. on 14 May 1990, men armed with machine—guns and suspected of belonging to the military command of the eastern zone were reported to have threatened these two individuals with death, giving them 72 hours to leave the country. OEe incident took place in the presence of witnesses, as the two left a cafeteria in calle 12, tone 1 of Guatemala City. It was also reported that, as soon as the men had left, Mr. de Le6n Vega and Mr. D vila Rivera asked national police patrol No. 144 for assistance, but their request was rejected. On the following day, they reportedly took refuge in the headquarters of the Guatemalan Red Cross and asked for asylum in the Canadian Embassy. 174. The Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take the necessary measures to protect the lives of Edgar Ren& de Le6n Vega and Josh Eduardo lMvila Rivera and requested information on these cases. 175. On 11 July 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Guatemala concerning a number of persons, most of them members of the National Association of Widows of Guatemala (CONAVIGUA) in the locality of Pacoc, municipality of Zacualpa, El Quich , who had reportedly received death threats on 14 June 1990 from a group of armed men believed to be members of the armed forces. According to the information, these men had been in possession of : what appeared to be a list of names that had been handed over earlier to the armed forces by the commander of the Pacoc civilian self—defence patrols. The cable transmitted the names of 16 persons allegedly threatened among whom one, Juana Calachij M6nde was reported to have been threatened earlier and to have been the victim of kidnapping attempts. 176. The SpecLal Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take the necessary measures to protect the life of the above—mentioned persons and requested information in this regard.
E/CN.41 1991/36 page 42 177. On 17 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Guatemala transmitting allegations that during the first six months of the year a large number of trade unionists, human rights defenders, peasant and student leaders received death threats or were killed, Reports attributed these actions to . . the security forces, paramilitary groups linked to security forces or to the civil self—defence patrols. Many of the killings naulted from the refusal of peasants and members of the indigenous communities to be inducted into the . civil patrols, despite article 34 of the Constitution which guaranteeD the voluntary nature of such recruitment. 178. Allegations of death threats were described as follows: (a) Juan Sales received death threats from a member of the cIvIl patrol reportedly for denouncing the destruction of several honies by the civil patrol in Cerro Phisphis; La Cumbre, San Ildefonso IxtahuaSu, fluehuetenango; (b) Juan Tan Meji , aged 22, member of CERJ; Domingo Tan Meji&, aged 17 and Diego Yat Us, aged 15 were threatened with death by the military for allegedly refusing induction into the civil patrol; Cc) Victoria Tojin Chu was threatened by a member of the Sacapulas, El Quich& military detachment, reportedly for denouncing attacks on civilians by the local civil patrol; (d) Gaspard Lux flu, aged 7; Giberto Lux Tiu, aged 10; Basillo Lax Tiu, aged 12; Margarita Lux, aged 15; Maria Pu, aged 52; and Josefa Tojin Imul, aged 55, all, residents of Parraxtut, Sacapulas, El Quich6, were threatened with death by soldiers for reportedly denouncing the death of a relative by the military; Ce) Aria Graciela Del Valle, a relative of Factor M&ndez Doninelli, president of the Centre of Investigation, Study and Promotion of Human Rights in Guatemala (CIEPRODH), who has reportedly received numerous death threats, was also threatened with death by members of the National Police; (f) Domingo Ventura, aged 35, member of CERJ, was threatened with death on 24 January 1990 when the commander of the San Andr s de Sajcabaj , El Quich6 military detachment and 30 soldiera entered his home by force and detained him for several hours for reportedly refusing to co—operate with the military; (g) Milhen Chavez, district director of CIEPRODR, went into exile due to death threats reportedly received for providing the press with information regarding Involvement of the G—2 military intelligence service in a human rights case; (h) Juan Luls Coy tlonz6n, member of the Union of Workers of the National : Institute of Electricity Workers (STINDE), was threatened with death and was told to stop union activities and leave the country. Prior to this incident, there wag an attempted kidnapping of his daughter and in January and February 1990, his wife was abducted and qucattoned regarding his union activities; I
. . .. :.. :::: : ; .. . : ___ E / C11 .4/1991/36 page 43 (i) Luis Fernando Hern nde :, Jos& L6pez P&rez, Abraham Santizo, C&sar Augusto Franc e de Le6n, Roberto Mair n Jacobo Abrego, Luis L6pez Cifuentes, Osberto Hugo Rodas, Alfonso Colop y Colop, Benaro Soberanis, and H&ctor Alvarado Cho, members of the executive committee of the union of CAUTSA (Central American Class Company) workers, were threatened with death by the anti—riot squad of the National Police when they were forcefully removed from the factory site on 3 June 1990; (j) Ram6n Ja come Pinto, leader of the Union of Workers of the Cuatemalan Social Security Institute (STIGSS), and his family were threatened with death on 8 May 1990 and were told to give up their union activities. 179. Deaths were described as follows: (a) MIguel Pu Lope:, aged 25 and Francisco Pucmach, aged 30 were killed by 20 members of the self—defence civil patrol on 16 May 1990 in San Sebastihn, Sacapulas, department of El QuIch . According to the police they died in an attack on the patrol. Eye—witness accounts contradict this explanation; (b) Pedro P&rez, aged 10 and Gaspar Callego, aged 15 were reportedly tortured and then killed on 28 April 1990 by soldiers from the military base in San Gaspar, Chajul, department of El Quich&; Cc) Jos6 Cuyuch Raymundo, aged 25, was killed in May 1990 in Cab , Chajul, department of El Quich6, when army members searched and then destroyed homes as well as cultivated fields; Cd) Fidelino RaW. Tobias Aparicio, aged 41; Miguel Angel Rianca Sicay, aged 44; Gregorio Ramires y Ramires, aged 42; Juan Pablo Quietuy, aged 48 were detained on 22 May 1990 by the military in Xexhiboy, Pamajoj Achichoy and Cheritay in Santiago Atitl&n in Solol& department. OEeir bodies were found on 24 May 1990 in Cerro Oro, Santiago Atitlti; Ce) Josh Maria Ixcayat, a leader of CERJ, was killed on 1 May 1990 by three masked and armed men dressed in civilian clothes in Caserio de la Fe. Reports attributed his death to the security forces or civilians who acted with their acquiescence or connivance, noting that he had previously received numerous death threats from the military and the civil patrols for his role in opposing forced conscription in the civil patrols; (f) Jos4 Vicente Garcia, a leader of CERJ, was killed on 10 April 1990 in La Montai a, El Quich6, by armed men dressed in civilian clothes. Re had on previous occasions been threatened with death and detained by members of the self—defence civil patrol; (g) Pedro Callege de Ledn was killed after being tortured on 10 March 1990 in El Quich by members of the army who attacked several towns in this department; (h) OEe bodies of Juan Gustavo Herrera ConIIlez, aged 23; Fernando Rivera orti :, aged 23; and Oscar Emilio Echeverri , aged 24 were found on 31. March 1990 in Escuintla department after having been detained days before in zone 1 In Guatemala City by members of the security forces and taken away in a blue jeep with polarized windows;
E/CN.4/1991/36 page 44 (i) Nestor Ren6 Osorio Sandoval, aged 41, member of the Union of Workers of the National Institute of Electricity (STINDE) in Chiquimula department, was killed on 2 March 1990 by three members of the security forces in the company plant; (j) C spar Lainez, aged 38 and Pablo Escobar, aged 32 were killed by members of the Second Infantry Battalion of the Nariscal Zavala brigade after having been detained on 13 February 1990; ( Ic) Manuel Lula y Luis, a member of CERJ, was killed on 15 January 1990 in Portrero Viejo, Zainalpa, El Guich . His body showed signs of beatings. Authorities refused to investigate his death or to hold en autopsy. 180. On 24 August 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of Guatemala concerning Jos Garcia Bauer, Deputy for the Central District of Guatemala, who reportedly received death threats on 31 July 1990 when his family had received a telephone call giving Mr. Garcia Batter 48 hours to leave the country. Eight other members of Congress had apparently also received death threats recently. 181. OEe Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take the necessary measures to protect the life of Jos& Garcia Batter and requested information on the case. 182. On 23 October 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Guatemala concerning Jos Vicente Soto, Education Secretary of the Training Institute (INTECAP) Union, and Carmen Rubenia Zepeda, aged 33, his fianc e, who were being watched and had received death threats. On 13 October 1990, Carmen Zepeda was said to have been kidnapped in zone 7 of Guatemala City by armed men wearing civilian clothes and travelling in a cream—coloured jeep with one—way windows. OEe kidnappers were said to have beaten her, questioned her about Mr. Soto's trade union activities and threatened him if he did not ismnediatedly leave the country. Miss Zepeda wan said to have been released next day. Since then, both persona concerned had reportedly continued to receive anonymous telephone calls. 183. OEe Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take the necessary measures to protect the right to life of the above—mentioned persons threatened with death and requested information on the case. 184. On 9 November 1990 another letter was sent to the Government of Guatemala transmitting allegations of a marked increase in killings in Guatemala particularly in the months preceding the November presidential elections. Of the 500 killings reported through September, approximately 55 per cent were said to have occurred between July and September. OEe victims were said to be members of unions, human rights organizations, opposition political groups and indigenous conununLt es. 185. AccordIng to information receIved, many of the killings had been preceded by death threats and many occurred when peasant and indigenouc men refused to serve in the self—defence patrols. OEese deaths were said to be attrIbutable to the security forces, to paramilitary groups linked to these and to the self—defence patrols which function with the connivance of the author tLen.
EICN.4/ 199 1f36 page 45 186. OEe following cases were described: (a) Killings (i) H&ctor Anibal Zufliga, aged 45, peasant, who was abducted by men driving a pickup truck with polarized windows, was found dead on 5 March 1990 in Villa Nueva, Ruta San Miguel Petapa, A].dea el Frutal; (ii) Jorge Anal Castro Carnillo, aged 24, a student of the national university (USAC) law school 1 wan abducted by four unidentified individuals on 1 October 1990 and his body dumped in front of the law school. OEe Minister of the Interior reportedly qualified his death as a con non crime; (iii) David Guti&rrez Morales, Everardo Botec Morales, Juan Jos& Orellana Chacdn and Israel Chac6n Aquino, peasant labourers in the Flor do la Esperanza co—operative who had disappeared in May 1990 from the co—operative in the municipality of La L bertad, department of El Pet n, were found dead on 27 September 1990 floating in the Usvmacinta River in El Pet&n. OEeir deaths were reported to the El Pet&n court and to the prosecutor for human rights on 26 September 1990; (iv) Refugio Aracely Villanueva was shot dead on 26 October 1990 in Calzada Aguilar Batres, Guatemala City, by two men riding a motocycle as she was driving with her husband, Byron Barrera, Vice—President of the Association of Journalists of Guatemala (APG) who had continued receiving death threats after having returned to Guatemala in 1986 following several years of exile. Her husband was seriously wounded in the same attack; (v) Ana Guadalupe HeriIIndez Leonardo, aged 17, taken from her home by heavily armed men in civilian clothes in zone 3 in Guatemala City on 7 September 1990, was found dead on 12 September 1990 under the El Incienso Bridge in Guatemala City. Her abduction had been reported to the National Police but an investigation was never initiated; (vi) Ilumberto Gonz .1ez Gamarra, Secretary—General of the Revolutionary Democratic Union (IJRD), was killed on 15 October 1990 at 4.10 p.m. in zone 11 in Guatemala City by heavily armed men in civilian clothes; (vii) Petronilo Nern&ndez Basi lio, Secretary of the Independent Agricultural Syndicate of Barrio La Reformita, an affiliate of the Trade Union Confederation of Guatemala (CUSG) was killed on 1 July 1990 in his home in the municipality of Moyuta, department of Jutlapa, by a group of men; (viii) Orlando Estuardo Alvarado Morales, a teacher, who had been kidnapped on 20 october 1990 in Guatemala City, was found dead on 1 November 1990;
E/GN.4/1991/36 page 46 (b) Attempted killings (i) Juan Jos4 Rodil Peralta, a congressional candidate for the National Centre Union Party (UCN), was ambushed on 5 October 1990 by a group of men in three cars as he returned from a political campaign trip; (c) Killings of human rights workers (i) tiyrna Mackchang, aged 40, director of the Institute for the Advancement of Social Sciences (AVANSCO), was stabbed to death on 11 September 1990 by unidentified men as she left her office at 7.00 p.m on 12th Street, zone 1 in Guatemala City; (ii) Maria Mejia, aged 67, member of CERJ, was killed on 19 March 1990 in her home when two military persons broke in searching for her son. Her husband, Pedro Lastro Tojin, was seriously wounded. OEe family had reportedly denounced continuing death threats from the military to the prosecutor for human rights; (iii) Pedro flu Cat, member of CEL l, after having been kidnapped on 2 July 1990 from his residence in Chajob by individuals identifying themselves as police, was found dead on 4 July 1990 in a neighbouring town; (iv) Joa Pedro Tiu Chival&n, aged 35, son of Pedro flu Gao, who had been kidnapped from his home on 2 October 1990, was found dead on 5 October 1990 in the department of Totonicap n; Cd) Death threats (i) Manuel Tumax Aguilar, a journalist, has been receiving death threats since 10 August 1990 and was being watched by unidentified individuals; (ii) Amilcar M6ndez Urizar, president of CERJ, received a death threat on 30 July 1990 and was given 72 hours to leave the country; (iii) Mario Polanco, aged 17, a member of the Crupo de Apoyo Mutuo (CAN) (Mutual Aid Group), was followed on 5 September 1990 by soldiers in a military jeep who then chased him on foot; Ce) Deaths in the course of military operations (I) Magdalena Efranin Fray Santos, aged 12, was killed between 22 and 30 August 1990 when army troops based in Amacehel, AxcIIz, department of El Quich , fired on inhabitants of that municipality wounding two other youths and capturing 37 civilians;
E/CN.4/1991/36 page 47 (ii) Gregor io Chevaj, an indigenous peasant, who had been detained in Cerro de Ojo, Santiago Atitlin, department of Sacatep&quez, was found dead on a public road after army soldiers marched into the indigenous community forcing out the inhabitants; (iii) Jos Cuyuch Ralymundo was killed between 9 and 15 May 1990 when soldiers from Txiaj&, El Quich4, carried out military operations in Cab municLpal ty of Chacul, El Quich6. Mr. Cuyuch was ill in his home when the military broke in and searched the residence. His body was later found in the Caba river with signs of torture; (iv) Pedro Villa, a peasant, had been detained on 22 June 1990 by members of the army based in Sulin, municipality of La Libertad, department of El Pet&n, while he was working in the field and was subsequently found dead. 187. OEe letter of 9 November 1990 further transmitted allegations of death threats and killings of street children involved in petty crIme or glue—sniffing by agents of the police in Guatemala City: (a) Deaths of minors (i) Naham&n Carmona L6pez, aged 13, died on 14 March 1990 as a result of serious injuries after reportedly being attacked on 4 March 1990 by members of the National Police on 12th Street . and 6th Avenue, zone 1 of Guatemala City, while he and other minors were sniffing glue. OEe other minors, who served as eye—witnesses, were said to continue to receive death threats. Four police agents had been charged with his death and held while the case was being considered in the lower court of the 1st crixainal court; (ii) Mann Oswaldo de la Cruz Almengor, aged 12, was shot dead on 18 May 1990 at 1.15 p.m. by a police agent while robbing a motorist of sunglasses. An eye—witness was said to have been detained and threatened at the scene; (iii) Walter Villatoro, aged 17; Salvador Sandoval, aged 16; and Jonito Jos6 Castellanos, who had been abducted on 25 June 1990 by heavily armed men driving a Blazer Jeep with polarized windo s on 20th Street, zone 1 in Guatemala CIty, were found dead with bullet wounds and signs of torture. 188. On 5 December 1990 a cable was sent to the Government of Guatemala transmitting allegations that the following individuals were killed in a summary manner by army soldiers attached to the military base in Sant iago Atitldn, So1o1 department of Suchetepequez: Juan Carlos Pablo Sosod, aged 20; Pedro Mendoza Cotu, aged 18; Francisco Girdn Chicojau, aged 10; Juan Ajuch n Mes n, aged 15; Salvador Damion Yaqui, aged 50; Felipe Quieju CuHn, aged 53; N lcolas AjtuJal Sosof, aged 17; Pedro Cnista Mendoza, aged 14; Caspar Coo Sicay, aged 18; Pedro Mendoza Pablo, aged 29; Pedro Daman Visquez, aged 45.
E/CN.4 1 1991/36 page 48 189. On 2 December 1990, a lieutenant from the Santiago detachment attempted to detain a member of the indigenous community and in the process, wounded a child with a bullet. OEe members of the community, as well as the incoming and outgoing mayors, went peacefully to the military base to protest the action and to speak to the commander. Soldiers then opened fire with machine—guns on the group, killing the above—mentioned persona. 190. OEe Special Rapporteur expressed concern for the physical safety of this communLty n the l ;ht of thi death threats and killIngs reported throughout the year in this community by the army which caused a perpetual state of fear among the people. 191. OEe Special Rapporteur requested information on this case and on any investigation made and particularly on the measures taken by the authorities to protect the lives and physical integrity of this cozanunity and to bring those responsible for the above—cited killings to justice. 192. On 12 December 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Guatemala to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 5 December 1990 with regard to the alleged massacre in Santiago Atitl n on 2 December 1990, transmitting a press cormnuniqu from the President which stated that details of the incident indicated a possibility of errors in contro11in the situation at the moment when the incidents were triggered. 193. It was also stated that the Government expressed its full intention to carry out an exhaustive investigation to determine the motives and development of the incidents as well as those responsible, and that the law would be strictly applied. In this regard, it was further stated that the Government would collaborate fully with the prosecutor for human rights and other competent authorities. Haiti 194. On 5 November 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a letter to the Government of Haiti mentioning that allegations to the effect that during the year 1989 civilians had been shot down by unidentified armed men, some of whom : were in military uniform, continued to be brought to his attention. It is alleged that the competent authorities have not conducted investigations into these murders which would have led to the arrest of the persons responsible. 195. OEe Special Rapporteur was informed in particular of the following cases: (a) A group of armed men, including persons in military uniform, is alleged to have opened fire on members of the Council of State on 21 June 1990, during a meeting with a group of private individuals. According to the source, Jean-4larie Montes, one of the persons attending the meeting was killed. Serve Villard, the representative of the private sector in the Council of State is said to have been seriously wounded and to have died on 24 June 1990. A third person is reported to have been injured during the se ine incident; (b) During the bight of 1—2 July 1990, in the St. 1artin district of Port—au—Prince, Nariano Delaunay, a teacher and founder of evening classes for needy residents of the town is saId to have been shot down by an armed man at the wheel of a lorry. Witnesses are reported to have identified the killer as an army sergeant;
E / ON . 4/ 1 991135 page 49 (c) On 3 August 1990, Merus Laroche is said to have died while in detention in Cap—Raitien prison. It is alleged that Laroche was arrested and detained in the army local headquarters where he was tortured before being transferred to the prison. It is said that there was no medical supervision of Laroche. 196. At the time of preparation of the present report no reply had been received from the Government of Haiti. Honduras 197. On 13 February 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of Honduras concerning death threats reportedly made against Mr. Oscar Anibal Puerto and Mr. Roberto Zelaya. According to this information, Mr. Puerto, a lawyer and vice—president of the Cormnittee for the Defence of Human Rights in Honduras (CODER), who received death threats over the telephone on 2 February 1990 at the CODER headquarters in Tegucigalpa, had already received threats of that kind in January and April 1989. In the case of Mr. Zelaya, who worked in the department of social sciences at the Teachers Training University, studied law at the Autonomous National University of Honduras, and was a member of the University Reform Front, three 0—2 agents had reportedly searched his home on the morning of 31 January 1990 and taken away books, and in the afternoon three armed men, members of the 3—16 battalion, were reported to have come to his home again, warning him not to lodge a complaint about the incident and to leave the country. 198. The Special Rapporteur, having received expressions of concern for the safety of the two above—mentioned persons, appealed to the Government to take the necessary measures to protect their lives and requested information on these cases. 199. On 6 April 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of flonduras concerning an attack on Roberto Ze laya, teacher in the social sciences department of the Teachers Training College and student of law at the Autonomous National University of Honduras. Pkccording to the information received, Mr. Ze laya had been seriously wounded in the course of an attack that had been taking place at 6.30 p.m. on 19 March 1990, while he had been walking near his home in Colonia Villanueva, Tegucigalpa. OEoae responsible for the attack were allegedly three armed men, supposedly connected with the armed forces, who had been driving a blue car with tinted windows and without number plates. OEey had left Roberto Ze].aya before neighbours arrived and took him to hospital, where he was apparently in a very serious condition. 200. Furthermore, the attackers were said to have threatened the victim and other people: Br. Ram6n Custodie, Oscar Anibal Puerto, Juan Almendares Bonilla and Hector Rern indez. OEese individuals had also recetved threats on various occasions during the previous year. 201. According to the information receLved, the threats and IntimidatLcn directed during the last few years against trade union members and people active in the field of human rights suggested that they were the work of clandestine groups operating in collusion with the armed forces and in particular with Battalion 3—16.
E/cN.4/1991/36 30 202. OEe Special Rapporteur had also noted with concern that in some recent cases the death threats had been carried out. On 4 July 1969, Edgardo Herrera, member of the Frente de Reforma Universitaria (flu), had been shot dead by two civilians. OEe most recent case was that of human rights activist Reynaldo Zuiliga who had been shot dead in San Pedro Sula in January 1990 , 203. In this connection, theSpecial Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take all necessary measures to protect the lives of the above—mentioned persons and requested any information in this regard. 204. On 17 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Honduras transmitting allegations that during the first half of 1990, a large number of death threats were reported particularly against members of the Committee for the Defence of Human Rights in Honduras (CODER), university organizations and peasant unions. Many of these threats were followed by extra—judicial killings by unident Ified Ind IvIduals alleged to be linked to the armed forces 3—16 and 0—2 (military security) battalions. In a number of cases, the victims were first illegally detained and tortured, their homes often ransacked. The following cases in particular were reported: (a) Roberto Zelaya, the attack on whom was referred to above. The individuals who threatened Roberto Zelaya with death told him to transmit the same threat to the following human rights and trade union activists: (i) Ramdn Custodio, president of the Committee for the Defence of Human Rights in Honduras; (ii) Juan Almendares Bonilla, head of the Co—ordinating Committee of Popular Organizations (CCOP); (iii) Hector Herndndez Fuente, president of the united Federation of Honduran Workers; (iv) Oscar Anibal Puerto, vice—president of the Committee for the Defence of Human Rights in Honduras; (b) Reynaldo Zufliga Cruz, regional president of the Committee for the Defence of Human Rights in Honduras (CODER) and leader of the National Committee of Farmworkers (CNTC), was shot in the back and killed by an individual dressed in civilian clothing in San Pedro Sula, department of Cortez, reportedly for his actIvities in favour of peasant land rights; Cc) Denis Hernz%n Rodriguez Garcia, member of the Farmworker Organization of Honduras, was detained on 20 March 1990 by mpmbers of the National Direction of Investigation (DNI) of La Hermita, Talaga, department of Moraz&n. He was then reportedly taken in an unmarked vehicle to the base of the First Special Forces Battalion. His body was found bearing gunshot wounds the following day near the Dulce river in OElaga. 205. On 7 December 1990, a letter wa sent to the Government of Honduras transmitting allegations that in 1990 polItically motIvated death threats and killings had continued to occur affecting orimarily individuals connected to the Commission for the Defence of Human Rights in Honduras (CODEHL
E / CN . 4/1991 / 36 page 51 According to reports, acts were attributed to the armed forces or civilian groups, made up in part of retired military personnel who operate with the acquiescence of the authorities. The Special Rapporteur described the following cases: (a) Cases of death threats Ci) AntoniA Ortega; Hilario Agufiera: Since 19 May 1990, AntonU Ortega, wife of Hilario Aguilera, Secretary for International Matters in the worker's union of the National Electric Energy Company (STENEE) had been ontinually harassed. On 19 May 1990 a group of heavily armed men broke into their home, interrogated her about her husband's activities and threatened her with death. Again on 29 flay 1990, at about 12.30 p.m., she was accosted and threatened with death by individuals travelling in unmarked vehicles and, according to reports, using the tactIcs of the counter—intelligence military units; (ii) Candelario Reyes Garc f i: On 26 June 1990, Mr. Reyes, director of the Peasant OEeatre Group Central Hibueras, received death threats from the high command of the Military Intelligence Unit (PROMITEC) based in Santa Barbara, department of Yoro. In addition, individuals reported to be members of the same military unit fired shots around his home; (b) Cases of killings Ci) Francisco livier Bonilla Medina: On 31 May 1990, Mr. Bonilla, a worker at the Honduran Institute of Social Security (hiss) and ex—president of the worker's union of the 11155 (SITRAIHSS), was killed in the Puente El Chile section of Tegucigalpa by an unknown individual following tensions between union members and management of the State—run institution, and after having been pursued by unknown individuals on a previous occasion and having escaped twice from a paramilitary group; (U) flam6n Antonio Bricei o: On 3 June 1990, Mr. Bricef o, a member of the University Reform Front (Frente de Ref orma Universitaria (FRU)), was found dead in the lCennedy—Llanos Section of Tegucigalpa after having been threatened on prior occasions by the Triple A of the United Democratic University Front (Frente Unido Universitario Democr&tico (FUUD)), a group alleged to be linked to State security forces; (iii) Ram6n de Jes us Ruiz Maradiaga: On 19 July 1990, Mr. Ruit, legal adviser for the Commission for the Defence of Human Rights in Honduras (CODER) and member of the Unity and Innovation Party (PINU), was killed in unclear circumstances at his home in La Celba, Atlantida by a weapon of 3.57 calibre reserved exclusively for official use, after having been threatened by the outgoing Cbmmander of the 10th Infantry Batallion of La Ceiba for his activities with CODER. His body was found with bullet wounds and signs of torture. Authorities concluded that he had committed suicide and no investigation was carried out into h Is death.
E/ CN . /./1991/36 page 51 According to reports, acts were attributed to the armed forces or civilian groups, made up in part of retired military personnel who operate with the acqu!escence of the authorities. OEe Special Rapporteur described the following cases: (a) Cases of death threats Ci) Antoni& Ortega; Nularic Aguilera: Since 19 May 1990, Antoni Ortega, wife of Hulario Aguilera, Secretary for International Matters in the worker's union of the National Electric Energy Company (STENEE) had been continually harassed. On 19 May 1990 a group of heavily armed men broke into their home, interrogated her about her husband's activities and threatened her with death. Again on 29 May 1990, at about 12.30 p.m., she was accosted and threatened with death by individuals travelling in unmarked vehicles and, according to reports, using the tactics of the counter—intelligence military units; (ii) Candelario Reyes Carci&: On 26 June 1990, Mr. Reyes, director of the Peasant Theatre Group Central Hibueras, received death threats from the high command of the Military Intelligence Unit (PROMITEC) based in Santa Barbara, department of Yoro. In addition, individuals reported to be members of the same military unit fired shots around his home; (b) Cases of killings Ci) Francisco flvier Bonilla Medina: On 31 May 1990, Mr. Bonilla, a worker at the Honduran Inst Itute of Social Security (iHss) and ex—president of the worker's union of the IHSS (SITRAIHSS), was killed in the Puente El Chile section of Tegucigalpa by an unknown individual following tensions between union members and management of the State—run institution, and after having been pursued by unknown individuals on a previous occasion and having escaped twice from a paramilitary group; (ii) Ram6n Antonio Briceflo: On 3 June 1990, Mr. Briceflo, a member of the University Reform Front (Frente de Reforma Univernitaria (flu)), was found dead in the Kennedy—Llanos Section of Tegucigalpa after having been threatened on prior occasions by the Triple A of the United Democratic University Front (Frente Unido Universitario DemocIItico (FUUD)), a group alleged to be linked to State security forces; (iii) Ram6n de Jes6s Ruiz Maradiaga: On 19 July 1990, Mr. Ruiz, legal adviser for the Commission for the Defence of Human Rights in Honduras (CODE H) and member of the Unity and Innovation Party (PINLt), was killed in unclear circumstances at his home in La CeLba, Atlant da by a weapon of 3.57 calibre reserved exclusively for officIal use, after havIng beer. threatened by the outgoing Cbtmuander of the 10th Infantry Batallion of La Ceiba for his activities with CODEH, HIs body was found with bullet wounds and signs of torture. Authorities concluded that he had cormiiitted suicide and no investigation was carried out into his death.
E/CN.4 /1991 / 36 page 52 206. On 2 October 1990 a reply was received from the Government of Honduras to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 17 July 1990 transmitting information into these cases communicated to the Government as follows: (a) Robert Zelaya; Ram6n Custodio; Juan Almendares Bonilla; Hector Hern&ndez Fuentes; Oscar Anibal Puerto: OEe courts conducted investigations but could not find any formal complaints filed by the aforementioned who claimed to have received death threats; (Ii) Reynaldo Zufliga Cruz: An investigation was stated to be in progress at the Third Criminal Court in San Pedro Sula. It also stated that no formal complaint had been lodged; Cc) Denis HernAn Rodriguez Garcia (NWiez): On 15 August 1990 the Criminal Court of the department of MorazLin decided to undertake a new investigation to correct procedural errors in the investigation by the magistrate of Talanga, MoraIIn. India 207. On 30 March 1990, the SpecIal Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of India regarding the information received that in the State of Janunu and Kashmir more than 50 persons had been killed by security forces during demonstrations in various towns between 21 and 30 January 1990, and on 1 March 1990 at least 29 persons had been killed during demonstrations in Tenjura and Zakura in and near Srinagar. It was alleged that security forces had opened fire indiscriminately and without warning at the demonstrators including women and children. 208. In view of the continuing tense situation In Jaxmnu and Kashmir, fears were expressed that further incidents of deaths might take place. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur, referrin to article 3 of the Code of Conduct for Law Enforcement Officiata, adopted by General Aae.mb ly resolution 34/169 of 17 December 1979 and its commentary stating that: “Law enforcement officials may use force only when strictly necessary and to the extent required for the performance of their duty”, appealed to the Government to take all necessary measures in order to ensure that the right to life be protected in every ponsibla nrnnner, and requested infonnation on the bpye m .uUgne4 4 1agad ifi1cUr 4 gf 4caChi and sho ,on II . oenavtoi kon ft 6IWEOEILE+ f8 ‘Et '&M !& tifE 209. On 6 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of India transmitting allegations that over the past year many incidents of arbitrary and Indiscriminate shooting by the Central Reserve Police Force (CRPF) or the army during demonstrations in Jammu and Kashmir State resulted In the death of a large number of unarmed civilians. The Special Rapporteur received a list of 48 persons allegedly killed in Srinagar and other towns by security forces up to 1. January 1990. According to some sources, the number of victIms had reached several hundred by May 1990. These incidents allegedly occurred in the context of a political campaign by a number of local groups for Independence or separation from India. Since January 1990, increasingly violent activities by several militant groups reporttdl'j also resulted in killings of civilians, particularly persons considered by the militants to be “traitors”.
E l CN . 14/1991 / 36 page 53 210. The following were described as examples of incidents of killings by the security forces as reported to the Special Rapporteur: (a) On 8 January 1990, in Srinagar, security forces opened fire and shot at unarmed demonstrators of whom 16 were killed; (b) On 20 January 1990, 20 persons were killed during raids of security forces in the localities of Tankipona, Curubazan, Habbakadal, Fatehkadal, Zaiden Mohalla, Chotabazar, Kanikadal and Shaheed Cuni; (c) On 21 January 1990, in Srinagar, the Central Reserve Police Force (CRPF) killed demonstrators, including women and children. According to an official account 60 persons died, but unofficial reports put the number of deaths at over ZOO; (d) On 21 January 1990, in Srinagar, 15 persons were killed when military forces stormed a mosque; (e) On 22 January 1990, during demonstrations, security forces killed four persons in Shaheed Gani and Ichanyar and three persona in Anantnag; (f) On 22 January 1990, in Srinagar, some 100 demonstrators were killed by the C aP ?; (g) On 23 January 1990, in Sonwan, security forces killed four persons who reportedly were attempting to contact United Nations officials in order to report human rights violations; ( I i) On 26 January 1990, in Srinagar, over 400 persons were killed, including 12 children and five women, when over one million people demonstrated; Ci) On 1 March 1990, in Shalimar, Tengpura and Zakuna, 29 persons were killed by security forces firing into the crowd during demonstrations . Also at Tengpura, demonstrators returning home in buses were shot by the security fortes when they were ordered to get out of the buses; (j) On 21 May 1990, unarmed civilians were killed near the Islamic College in Srinagar when members of the GR IP opened fire indiscriminately on mourners accompanying the body of Naulana Nohammad Farooq, the head priest of Srinagar who had been shot dead by unidentified gunmen. Reportedly, official figures indicated that 20 persons had died immediately and 2.7 others later in hospital. Unofficial reports put the number of deaths as high as 154. 211. Furthermore, it was alleged that in Punjab, in a situation of political violence, 4,000 to 5,000 persona have been killed since June 1984 by the police or armed forces during arrests or while in detention. It was also alleged that the Ptmjab police issued in August 1989 an instruction to all District Sen!or SuperIntendents of Police, sanctioning rewards for “arrest/liquidation of wanted extremfats/terrorists” with 53 names and
E/CN.4/ 199 1/36 page 54 addresses of 0 terrorists” with the amounts of reward, thus granting members of the police a free hand to kill. In addition to those already transmitted to the Government, the following cases were received: (a) On 15 Nay 1989, in Mandamarri, Adilabad district, Ramaswamy was detained by the police, but his detention was denied in response to a habeas corpus petition filed in the High Court. Later the police reportedly stated that a dead body in the D davari river bed neat the village of Ludanani was identified as the corpse of Ramaswaxny; (b) On 21 June 1989, in Maniama, Jahanabad district, Ran Swaroop Choudhry end Vinay Yadab were killed by the police. OEe police reportedly stated that they were two extremists killed in an encounter; (c) On 6 July 1989, in Tihar prison, tJttam Singh died in his cell under unknown circumstances; (d) On 6 and 7 July 1989 respectively, lJttam Singhin and Manxnohan Siugh died in their cells in Tihar prison. Both men were arrested in 1988 by the Crime Branch, on charges of possessing contraband. Manmohan Singh was in good health the evening before his death when his wife visited him; (a) On 16 June 1989, in Bham village, Batala, Srihargobindpur, the bodies of Sarabjit, aged 14, and Salwinder, aged 13, were found in a water—filled drain. According to the report, the two girls were abducted by a member of the Punjab Armed Police and strangled to death after being raped; (f) On 23 July 1989, Kuljit Singh Dhatt, village chief of Ambala Jattan, in the district of Hoshiarpur, was arrested while visiting his relative in the village of Garhi, and was detained at the Tanda Police station. Her body was later found in the Bias River showing signs of torture; (g) On 16 June 1989, in Sharifpura, Amritsar, Jaswant Singh and his three brothers were arrested by some 30 policemen and detained. While two of his brothers were released 10 days later, Jaswant Singh who was produced in the court following his arrest in an alleged encounter with the police, was stated to have later escaped from police custody. Jaswant Singh was reported, on 15 August 1989, to have been killed in an ambush while being transported by the police in the area under the jurisdiction of Kathunangal police station. In the ambush no policeman was reportedly injured. OEe body of Jaswant Singh was not shown nor was it handed over to his family; (h) On 18 November 1989, in Aoeritsar, Parinjit Singh, aged 22, an assistant to a cloth merchant, was caught and beaten by six policemen while he was passing through Katra Abluwala Market where there had been a bomb blast. A furious mob then snatched Parmjit Singh from the policemen beating and setting him on fire with kerosene. During the incident, the police neither intervened to stop the assault nor sought reinforcements. Despite the piCA by the victim's family, autopsy was not held on the body of Parmjit Slngh.
.‘ E/CN.4 1 1991 /36 page 55 212. In addition, during the past year, in various parts of the country, several persons allegedly died in police custody as a result of torture. The following incidents were described: (a) On 13 February 1989, in Khopoli, Raigad district, Naharashtra state, Jaggu Lakshoean Chavan, aged 30, was arrested at his home by policemen from Palton Road police station, Bombay. Jaggu Lakahman Chavan died at Fanvel municipal hospital on 3 March1989 while in the custody of the Panvel police; he had been brought to the hospital from the police station the previous day. : This family was not informed of his death until 3 March when his relatives saw his body at the hospital, swollen and covered with weale and bruises; (b) On 2 Nay 1989, Ntihar Gazi, aged 50, an activist of the Connnunist Party of India from Khoronpur village, Bengal state, was arrested and taken to the Rasnabad police station. On 13 May 1989, his death was officially acknowledged. According to the report, he died as a result of torture in police custody; Cc) On 19 October 1989, in Uttar Pradesh state, Cm Prakesh, aged 25, died in police custody at Ceeta Colony police station. The police stated that Om Prakesh conmiitted suicide shortly after having been brought in for questioning. The body of Ow Prakesh was said to have been cremated hurriedly after a routine st mortem . No inquest into the circumstances of his death was known to have been held. 213. On 5 November 1990, a letter was Bent to the Government of India transmitting allegations of incidents of killings in Jaxanu and Icashmir state by members of the Border Security Force, as follows: (a) On 7 August 1990, in Nashali Mohala Eawal, Srinagar, at least 10 persona were shot by members of the Border Security Force (BSF) who forcibly entered seven private houses at around 10.30 p.m. Six persons died on the spot and four others died later. It was alleged that the members of the BSF carried out the killings in retaliation for an attack on one of their patrols in the area shortly before. OEe victims were said to include a 70—year—old man and a 7—year—old boy. Although the Governor reportedly announced later that an investigation into the incident had been ordered and that charges of murder and arson had been brought against the Director General of the BSF in connection with the incident, the outconte of the investigation was not yet known to have been made public; (b) On 1 October 1990, in Bandwara, Kashmir, at least 15 civilians were killed by members of the BSF in retaliation for the murder of one of their colleagues by a group of armed men advocating the secession of Jwnmu and Kashmir State from India. OEe victims were said to include Gulan Rasool Nalik, a former legislator of Jammu and Kashmir State Assembly, who was dragged out of his house by members of the BSF and shot and also Culan Nabi Shapoo, who was killed in the s Imilar manner, In addItion, one policeman was reportedly killed when he tried to stop the BSF from setting fire to local buildIngs. 214. On 28 November 1990, another letter was sent to the Government of IndIa transmitting allegations that during the 32 months of the presence of the Ind Ian Peace Keeping Forces (IPKF) in the north—eastern part of Sri Lanka under the Indo—SrI Lanka Accord signed in July 2987, a large number of unarmed
E / CN • 14/1991/36 page 56 civilians were killed in a sunutary manner by members of the IPKF, or by Tamil groups allied to the IPKF and acting with their acquiescence. In addition to the alleged incidents of killings by the IPKF already transmitted to the Government, a report on the following incident was received: On 2 August 1989 in Valvettitturai, 52 persona were shot dead by IPKF soldiers when soldiers rampaged through the town, shot at residents and set fire to houses and other properties. The victims included ‘ Vengadasalani Subramaniam, aged 60, 5. Illayaperumal, aged 70, Rajaguru Javanaraj, aged 11, Aathy Sundareawaran, aged 11. OEe attack was said to be the reprisal for the LTTE Vaivettitturai market ambush on an IPKF patrol in which nix soldiers were killed. 215. On 23 July 1990, a reply was received from the Government of India to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 30 March 1990 transmitting information on the alleged killing of more than 50 persons by security forces during demonstrations in Jammu and Kashmir. It was stated that while some deaths had occurred in certain towns of Jamtnu and Kashmir when security forces opened fire against demonstrators, the action taken by security forces was a last resort in self—defence and to protect public property against heavy stone—pelting and even firing and bomb attacks. OEe actions taken were completely in accordance with article 3 of the Code of Conduct for Law Enforcement Officials since force was used only when it was strictly necessary and to the ectent required for the performance of their duty. Indonesia 216. On 14 March 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of Indonesia regarding the information received that six persons who had been reportedly under sentence of death for their membership of the Coununist Party of Indonesia ( ct) and for their involvement in the attempted mi of October 1965 or the Blitar rebellion of 1967, might be facing izwiinent execution. It was further reported that those who had appealed for presidential clemency had been informed that their appeals had been rejected. OEeir names were given as follows: Ruslam Widjayasaotra, Sdlcatno, Iskandar Subekti, Asep Surysman, I. Bungkus, Mareudi. 217. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur, referring to his cables dated 3 June 1985 and 7 November 1988 in which he had appealed to the Government for the life of those sentenced to death for their involvement in the above—mentioned couv attempt and rebellion and having taken note with appreciation of the replies received from the Government, repeated his earlier appeals to the Government to spare the lives of the above—mentioned six persons. 218. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Indonesia transmitting allegations that during the past year in Acheh, Sumatra, several civilians were killed in a surruuary manner by Indonesian soldiers, for their suspected support and sympathy for the Acheh/Sumatra NatScnal LiberatIon Front 219. OEe following cases were described: (a) On 20 January 1989, Yusuf Ahmad, a farmer in the vIllage of Truseb, provInce of Pidie, was shot dead at his home by members of the Indonesian army;
E/CN.4/ 199 1/36 page 57 (b) On 14 February 1989, Yunus Abdu l lah, 53, a farmer in the village of Labo Adang, was arrested and tortured by the army at the Larnmeulo barracks. lie died a few dayi after h is release allegedly as a raault of torture; (c) On 2 May 1989, Zainuddin Faqih, 45, a businessman in the village of Truseb, province of Pidie, was shot dead in his house by members of the Indonesian army; (a) On 12 June 1989, Pawang Ibrahim Puteh, 51, a farmer in the village of Tjubo, province of Pidie, was arrested and tortured at the army barracks in Laxmneulo. On 15 June, he was brought to the village of Blang Keudah, where he was executed by the army; (e) On 20 November 1989, in the town of Ceulumpang Duwa, North Acheh, three young men were attacked and shot at their workplace by Indonesian soldiers in civilian clothes, resulting in the death of Zulkifli Hamid, aged 25, and Bakhtiar Ibrahim, aged 27; U) On 9 September 1989, I ladji Tjut, 63, a businessman from the town of Kru ng Geuku k, North Acheh, Sumatra, was arrested and tortured in the Jalan Gandhi jail in Medan. Later his family received his clothes: this was said to be a customary indication of his death; (g) On 15 January 1990, Muhammad Yusuf Sulaiman, aged 22, was shot dead at Lhok Seumai4 IndonesIan Military Prison; (h) On 20 January 1990, Bukhari Abdul Rahman, aged 26, was shot dead at Lhok Seumaw Military Prison; (i) On 5 February 1990, Zulkifli Abdul Gani, aged 24, was shot dead at Lhok Seumaw Military Prison; (3) On 5 February 1990, Zakaria Ibrahim, aged 23, was shot dead at Lhok Seumaw Military Prison; ( Ic) Hasbi Ismail, aged 25, was shot dead by the Indonesian army in the market—place of the town of Panton Labs; (1) On 15 February 1990, Anwar A. R. Mi , aged 24, was shot dead in Lhok Seumaw Military Prison; (m) On 20 February 1990, Ibrahim Gayo, aged 25, was killed by the Indonesian army by drowning him in the sea off Lhok Seumaw , after members of the Indonesian army put him in a sack with both of his hands and both of his feet being tied together with ropes. Reportedly he was thrown into the sea and then dragged by an Indonesian naval boat until he died of suffocation. 220. In addition , it was alleged that in East Timor several persona were killed by army troops for their suspected sympathy for Fretilin (Frente Revoluclonarlo de Timor Lasts). OEe following two cases were reported: (a) In January 1959, Josefina Facungo was raped and killed by army troops near Poros after the troops had forced her to accompany them into the jungle In search of her husband, an alleged Fretilin supporter;
EICN .4 1l99 1/36 page 58 (b) In June 1989, three unarmed young men were killed by Government forces while cutting wood outside the permitted timbering area near Ossu. The three were accused of being Fretilin spies, tied together and shot dead. 221. Furthermore, it was alleged that during the past year a number of persons died in custody as a result of torture or due to harsh prison conditions. Following are some examples of such allegations: (a) In April 1989, twan Nirwana, a criminal suspect, died in police custody in Cianjur as a result of torture. In September 1989, another criminal suspect, Didin Tajudin, died in custody. His body reportedly was covered with open wounds and bruises. The police allegedly stated that he had committed suicide. No official inquiries into these deaths were known to have been conducted; (b) In January 1989, Gustav Tanawani, convicted in 1984 of subversion, died in custody at Madiun jail after his requests for medical treatment were repeatedly denied; (c) In September 1989, two prisoners died at the Kalimantan Timur prison due to harsh conditions. 222. On & November 1990, another letter was sent to the Government of Indonesia, transmitting alleged cases of killings of villagers in East Tim er by Government forces as follows: (a) On 13 August 1989, in Leotelo, Nunumogue, Francisco Magno, son of Larmanu and Bemali was shot dead by soldiers; (b) On 29 March 1990, in Tua—Metan, Candido Amaral, aged 39, from Lalerek—Mutin was executed by firing squad. Allegedly he was arrested on 28 March and tortured together with three others by members of the security forces for suspected links with Fretilin. 223. On 29 May 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Indonesia to the Special Itapporteur t s cable of 14 (larch 1990 concerning the alleged imminent execution of six persons under sentence of death, stating that news about the purportedly imminent executions of the six persons convicted for their involvement in the abortive attempt in 1965 was based on inaccurate information and presumptions, and that the six persons in question were still in detention awaiting the finalization of due process of law in their respective cases. 224. It was further stated that their guilt and direct involvement in the act of treason against the State and its lawful institutions had been proven beyond doubt through fair and public trials in full accordance with Indonesian criminal law and procedures, that all of them, regardless of their former professLcns had been given the right to appeal through the High Courts as well as the Supreme Court in accordance with existing legal procedures and that they had also been given subsequent opportunities to plea for clemency.
E ICN.4/1991/36 page 59 225. It was also stated that, as clarified in the Government's reply of 4 January 1989 on a similar case, the seemingly long delay in the process of law should be sco tt in the light of the massive scale on which the abortive jzg attempt took place which involved several thousand people, and that the presence of those already convicted and sentenced was required as material witnesses in related trials held throughout the country. . 226. On 9 July 1990, a letter was received from the Government of Indonesia, to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 15 December 1989, (see E IC}l.4/1990 122, para. 240) stating that due to a similarity of names, a mistake was made and that “Felix Ximenes” should read “Joaquim Ximenes”. 227. On 27 September 1990 a reply was received from the Government of Indonesia to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 26 July 1990 transmitting information on cases as follows: (a) Civilians allegedly killed in a susmnary manner by Indonesian soldiers for suspected support and sympathy for the Acheh/Sumatra National Liberation Front: (i) Bukhari Abdul Rabman was currently under police custody for interrogation; (ii) Zulkif 11 was also currently under police custody; (iii) Ibrahim Gayo remained under police custody. Among those killed in shootouts during military operations to restore peace and public order in the Province of Acheh were the following criminal gang members: (iv) Tunuf Ab, believed to be a leader of a band, on 1 July 1990 as he defied arrest; (v) Tenku Iskandar, Muhaswnad Elyas Syahrul and N. Anwar who were killed in separate shootouta after they shot innocent civilians and refused to surrender to authorities; (b) Persona in East Timor alleged to have been killed by army troops for suspected sympathy for Fretilin (Frente Revolucionario de Timor Leste). OEe following information ott cases was transmitted: (i) Josephine Ximenes — not Josephine “Facungo”, aged 30, was found dead on 29 January 1990 at 12.00 p.m. in Poros, an area restricted for security reasons and where she was believed to have maintained contacts with elements creating disturbances; (ii) Uato Naha, aged 39, and Raul da Silva, aged 32, were killed on 31 May 1989 at 10.00 san., in Ossu Liquimeta, by security personnel after defying arrest in a restricted area; (c) Persons ‘who allegedly died in custody as a result of torture or harsh prison conditions: (1.) Iwan Nirvana, aged 21, under police custody in Facet prison in West Java between 14 March 1989 and 9 April 1989, died as a result of a pre—existing illness. Reports of torture or maltreatment were groundless; ( Li) Dld!n Tajudin, aged 28, of Eampung frardjalaksana, the village of Neglasari, CtanJurvest Java, conunitted suicide on 17 September 1989 in his prison cell. This was confirmed by the district physician who examined the body;
E/CN.4/199 1/36 page 60 (iii) Gustav Tanawani, alias Harold Smith, aged 34, died on 8 January 1989 from an inflammation of the lung tissue affecting the heart after having reported to the prison clinic on 4 January. While in custody his right to physical and mental integrity was protected in accordance with applicable rules and regulations; therefore allegations of denial of medical treatment were unfounded. Iran (Islamic Revublic ofi 228. On 26 January 1990, the Special Rapporteur cent a cable to the Islamic Republic of Iran concerning the allegation that 0O persona among 14,000 said to have been arrested since Iarch 1989 for drug—trafficking were facing execution. According to the inforoeation, since the beginning of 1989, a large number of persons, said to have been convicted of non—political offences such as drug—trafficking, murder, rape and armed robbery had been executed after summary trials under instructions to the judiciary to speed up the punishment of crime. Defendants allegedly had no right to call witness in their defence, to legal representation nor had they had any effective right to appeal against the verdict or sentence, It was alleged that most recently, on 10 January 1990, 31 drug—traffickers had been executed. 229. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur referred to article 6 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights to which the Islamic Republic of Iran was a party, in particular to article 6, paragraph 1, stating that “every human being baa the inherent right to life”, that “this right shall be protected by law” and that “no one shall be arbitrarily deprived of his life”, and to article 14 of the same Covenant which provided for the rights of the defendant, including the right to obtain the attendance and examination of witnesses on his behalf under the same conditions as witnesses against him, the right to have legal assistance and the right to appeal to a higher tribunal. Be appealed to the Government to take all measures to ensure that the right to life of the 900 persons be protected. 230. On 27 April 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Iran concerning information received that according to a report by uREA, an Iranian News Agency, on 26 April 1990, “several people arrested for spying for the United States would be hanged in the next few days” and that these prisoners were 10 persons sentenced to death by an Islamic Revolutionary Court. 231. According to the report, proceedings before the Islamic Revolutionary Court had not guaranteed the rights of the defendant as provided for in article 14 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights to which the Islamic Republic of Iran was a party. It was further alleged that prisoners had been held in indefinite incotmnunicado pre—trial detention where they had been often subjected to torture. 232. The Special Rapporteur, expressing hIs serious concern with the above—mentioned reports of imminent execution of the 10 prisoners appealed to the Government to ensure that the r Ight to life and other rights of the defendants be protected In every possIble manner, and requested, urgently, information concerning the above—mentioned cases and In particular the trial proceedings in whIch they might have been sentenced to death.
E/CN.4/199 1/36 page 61 233. On 11 May 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Iran referring to the Special Rapporteur's appeal of 27 April 1990 concerning a group of persons who, according to a report by IRNA of 26 April 1990, “were arrested for spying for the United States of America and would be hanged in the next few days”, by which a list of 11 names was transmitted. 234. Furthermore, the Special Rapporteur brought to the attention of the Government that in the reports he had received in the last few days, it had been again asserted that the rights provided for in articles 6 and 14 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights and in safeguards S and 6 of the annex to Economic and Social Council resolution 1984/50 entitled “Implementation of safeguards guaranteeing the rights of those facing the death penalty” had not been respected by the tribunals issuing the death sentences. 235. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur addressed to the Government an urgent appeal to ensure that all rights of these persQns as stipulated in the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights to which the Islamic Republic of Ir an was a party and, in particular, their right to life be fully protected, and to inform him of the measures taken in this regard. Should all legal remedies to which the defendants were entitled in accordance with the above—mentioned instruments be exhausted, he appealed to the Government to favourably consider granting clemency so as to spare the lives of these persons. 236. On 12 May 1990 another cable was sent to the Oovarnment of the Islamic Republic of Iran concerning Mr. Rhalit Nahai, said to have been arrested one year before. Aoqordina to the intormetton, Mr, Nahet was SAid to be lacing execution shortly and it was alleged that due process of law 1 which would guarantee the rights of persons accused before an independent tribunal, might not have been respected. 237i In this connection 1 the Special Rappotteur emphasind that the right to life i i a oeb t fundamental and crunial human right end appealed II the t oiMinihSnk b ensure Ehat no executdon would take place, especially if such an execution was the result of a sununary trial or any other procedure in which the rights of the individual were not fully protected. Be also referred to articles 3, 10 and 11 of the Universal Declaration of Human Rights and to ! / articles 6 and 14 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights to which Iran is a party. 238. On 14 June 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a letter to the Permanent Observer of Switzerland to the United Nations Office at Geneva referring to the assassination of Dr. Kazem Radjavi, an Iranian national residing in Switzerland, which took place on 24 April 1990 in the outskirts of Gen va. 239. OEe Special Rapporteur, having received several allegations that Dr . Radjavi, a leading member of an organization opposing the Government of the Islamic Republic of Iran, might have been killed by agents acting under the orders of that Government, stated that, while the Swiss authorities assume the primary responsibility of carrying out investigat!cns into this case of killing which occurred within the territory under their jurisdiction, he, under the mandate entrusted to him by the Conunisaion on Human Rights, was obl Iged to examine the case in regard to the above—mentioned allegations.
V/ON.4/ 199 1135 page 62 240. In this connection, he requested the Government of Switzerland to provide him with any pertinent information concerning the case in question. 241. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of the Islamic Republic of Iran transmitting allegations that during the past year supporters and suspected supporters of the People's Mojahedin Organization, and other civilians were executed, often after having been tortured. In several cases no trial was allegedly held before the execution and even when there was a trial, the defendants were not granted the right to legal counsel, the right to call witnesses nor the right to appeal to a higher tribunal. 242. Among those allegedly executed the following names were given: (a) At Evin prison in Tebran: Rahman Khodabakhsi, on 21 January 1990; Mansoun Bashiri, aged 25, on 20 February 1990; Sayyed All, on 19 January 1990 ; (b) In Rasht: Atta Nik—Bakhsh, in February 1990; flassoud Rouata, in February 1990; Moharnmad Raujbar, aged 29, on 20 February 1990; (c) In Adel—Abad: Mina Salati, aged 24, in September 1989; (d) In Tabriz Youssef Razavi, on 7 January 1990; Reza Rastegar, on 7 January 1990; Rahim Ghadaksaz, aged 21, on 7 January 1990; (a) At Gheze l Ressan prison in Tehran: Hossein Azar Zamzam, aged 21, in December 1989; (f) In Mashad: Hassan Saffaran, Aged 48, in January 1990; (g) In addition, on 19 February 1990, in Tehran and other cities, 30 persons were reportedly executed in public. 243. Furthermore, it was alleged that. on 24 April 1990, in the outskirts of Geneva, Switzerland, Dr. Kazem Radjavi, a leading member of the People's Mojahedin of Iran, was assassinated by agents acting under the orders of the Iranian Government. 244. On 12 December 1990, another letter was sent to the Government of the I slamic Republic of Iran, stating that the Special Rapporteur had, during 1990, received numerous allegations of executions. During the period January to October 1990 some 550 executions were reported by non—governmental sources as officially announced executions. A list provided by the Government of executions carried out between 21 March and 8 October 1990, reproduced in Appendix X of the report of the Special Representative on the situation of human rights in the Islamic Republic of Iran to the fatty—fifth session of the General Assembly (A/45/697), indicated 113 names of persons executed in Arak, Azarshahr, Balchtaran, Zorazjan, Boushehr, Eslamshahr, Lavasanat, Mashad, tlianeh, Najaf—Abad, Qom, Roudehen, Shiraz, rehran and Zahedan. 245. It was also alleged that executiona for drug trafficking offences had increased greatly since January 1989. On 21 3anuary 1989 a new law on drug trafficking went into force, which provided for a mandatory death sentence for anyone found in possessIon of note than five kilograms of hashish or opium, or
E/CN,4/ 199 1/36 111 page 63 more than 30 grams of codein, heroIn, methadone or morphine. Between January 1989 and July 1990 over 1,100 people were allegedly executed for drug trafficking, in some cases combined with other charges. It was alleged that this figure rose sharply following an announcement at the end of August 1990 by the President of the Supreme Court that a special system was being set up to deal. rapidly with drug trafficking cases and to ensure that convicted traffickers would be hanged within 15 days of arrest. In Mashad alone at least 113 persons were said to have been executed since September 1990. In various other cities including Tabriz, Kermanshah, Zahedan, Zabol, Mashad and Corgan, more than 100 persons were reportedly executed during the last week of October 1990. It was alleged that among those executed for drug trafficking were a number of opponents or suspected opponents to the Government. 246. It was also reported that as of January 1990 several persons have been executed for their homosexual or lesbian tendencies. At least five such executions were said to have taken place in 1990. 247. The above—mentioned executions were reportedly accompanied by a number of executions for other off ences: activities against the security of the country, spying, co—operation with armed rebels as wel l, as cases of common crimes such as murder, armed robbery, kidnapping, rape and adultery. It was asserted that the death penalty was very broadly applied, frequently to vaguely defined off ences which did not involve murder or serious bodily harm constituting the “moat serious crimes” as referred to in article 6, paragraph 2, of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights. 248. Executions of political opponents allegedly continued in 1990. However, the number of reported executions for political reasons were inferior to the numbers alleged in the three previous years. Some of the executed had been re—tried while serving prison sentences or had already completed their terms : of imprisonment at the time of their execution. 249. OEe majority of executions were reportedly carried out by hanging, often in public. It was said that such executions took place on purpose—built gallows, or the prisoners were hauled up by the neck by a crane or pulley, leading to a slower death by strangulation. In a few cases execution methods reportedly included stoning to death and beheading. A number of the condemned prisoners, prior to their execution, were allegedly subjected to torture. In the case of political opponents, executions were said to have been carried out secretly within prison compounds. 250. According to the information received, trials by which the defendants were sentenced to death were of a summary nature, without the safeguards designed to ensure a fair trial, as provided for in articles 6 and 14 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights to which the Islamic Republic of Iran is a party. Although the judicial authorities of the Islamic Republic of Iran stated in their response of 5 June 1990 to the Special Representative on the s!tu atIon of human rights in the Islamic Republic of Iran that the defendants tried by the Islamic Revo1ut onary Court were entitled to appo Int legal counsel and could defend themselves during the trial, the absence of lawyers In pnctically all reported cases constituted a major def Iciency in the procedures of the revolutionary courts.
E/CM.4 1 1991/36 page 64 251. It was also reported that trials before Isla mic revolutionary courts usually took place in secret, sometimes inside prisons, and that hearings before such courts in many instances took place in a matter of minutes only. Other major shortcomings in the procedures of revolutionary courts were said to have consisted in the denial of the right of the accused to call witnesses in their own defence, and in the fact that an appeal procedure guaranteeing the rights of the accused in conformity with article 14 (5) of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights and the Safeguards Guaranteeing Protection of the Rights of those Facing the Death Penalty, adopted by the Economic and Social Council in 1984, were not available to the defendants. 252. Allegations on concrete cases of executions of a summary or arbitrary nature carried out in the past several months were reported as follows: (a) On 10 October 1989, Hassan Saffaran was executed without trial; (b) In October 1989, Davoud Mohammadi, a veterinarian in Arak, was executed on charges of drug trafficking. However, the real reason for his execution was said to have been his opposition to the Government; Cc) In November 1989, the family of Muir Taavoni—Ganji, who had been arrested in 1988 on his return to Iran for a short visit and detained at Evin prison, was told by the prison authorities to collect his clothes and other belongings, as he had been executed; (d) It was reported on 16 January 1990 that a 31—year—old woman convicted for prostitution had been stoned to death in Bander Antali; (a) It was reported on 31 January 1990, that the Komiteh Comander of the Province of West Azerbaijan announced that a ring of persons engaged in prostitution and corruption had been arrested and five of them had been stoned to death; (f) On 14 February 1990 a judicial panel sent to Hamadan on behalf of the Head of the Judiciary reportedly issued the following sentences: (i) Gholainhoasein Goizar, 27 years old, a dismissed employee of the Agricultural Bank of Hamadan: 74 lashes for committing robbery; 92 lashes for participation in a forbidden act, and decapitation by the just sword of the Imam Ali; (ii) Gholamhassan Golzar, aged 28, a dismissed employee of the Hamadan Municipality: 74 lashes for committing robbery; 74 lashes for participation in a forbidden act, and decapitation by the just sword of Imazn Ali; (iii) Reza Khanian, 23 years old, a fruit and vegetable centre clerk: 74 lashes for committing robbery; 50 lashes for participation in a forbidden act; amputation of hand for committing assault and battery and hanging by scaffold; (g) It was reported on 15 February 1990, that Gholam Reza Masouri was hanged in Arak for pederasty;
EICN.47199 1136 I page 65 (h) On 3 April 1990% Abbas Raissi, a navy officer stationed in Chah Bahar, arrested in September 1989, was executed in Zahedan prison. According to information received, his arrest, together with some other persons including his nephews and brother, Mohammed Karim Naroui, related to his association with an opponent to the Government who had been smuggled out of Iran. Mohammed ICarim Naroui was reportedly executed on 28 January 1990, in Zahedan prison, after having been sentenced to death on the previous day. Although the Government's reply of 26 April 1990 to the Special Representative of the Commission on Human Rights on the situation of human rights in the Islamic Republic of Iran stated that he had been condemned to death on charges of espionage and that the death sentence was carried out after due process of law, details of his trial proceedings were not provided; ( ) On 17 and 27 April 1990, in Sanandaj, 18 persons, who had been arrested for their participation in May Day celebrations in 1989, were executed. Fourteen names were given as follows: Mehdi Bolur—Forush, Jamal Cheragh—Disi, Nader Fat'hi, Seid Saleh Hosseini, Naser Jalali, Ahoead t4ohamadi, Mi Ashraf Moradi, Mohsen Othman Pour, Ahmad Parviti, Mohaniad Rozaii, Naser Sobhani, Anvar Shariati, Roya, Bakhtiari; . (j) On 3 October 1990, Mahmoud Ehan—Darabi was executed in Kermanshah; ( Ic) The following four persons were said to have been executed in 1990 while serving prison sentences or after having completed prison sentence: ( i i Javad Rabmanian, arrested in summer 1981 and released in 1985, was executed i t t Jahrom, Fars province; (ii) Massoud Keshavarz, arrested in Rasht, Cilan province, in 1981, was executed after having been imprisoned for nine years in Rasht, Evin and Qezel—Hessar (Karaj) prisons; (iii) Davood Sa lahshour, aged 31, was executed in Tehran after serving six years of a nine—year sentence; (iv) Hassan Salari—Hajiabadi was executed on 20 April 1990, while serving his sentence of imprisonment; (1) Mohammad Heydari was executed without trial in Gachsaran in 1990 , 253. Cases of assassination outside the country, allegedly by agents of the Government, were also reported. Among such incidents were the following: (a) On 4 June 1989, Atayollah l3yahmadi, a former colonel in the Shah's Intelligence Service, was shot dead in Dubai, in the United Arab Emirates; I I) On 13 July 1989, Dr. Abdul Rahman Ghassemlou, leader of the Kurdish Democratic Party of Iran, was killed in Vienna together with two companions. In November 1989 the Austrian authorities issued arrest warrants for Iranian Government agents who had left Austria or gone into h!d ng In the Iranian Embassy in Vienna after the killings; Cc) In August 1989 a member of the Central Conunittee of the Community Party of Iran, Bahman Javadi, was killed In a street in Cyprus;
E/CN.4f1991 136 page 66 (d) On 22 October 1990, Professor Cyrus Elahi, a member of the Flag of Freedom Organization of Iran, was shot dead at his Paris home. Re was found with numerous bullet wounds to the head. The had allegedly received repeated death threats; (e) With regard to the assassination of Mr. Kazem Rajavi which was communicated to the Government by the Special Rapporteur's letter of 26 July 1990, it was stated in a press release issued on 22 June 1990 by the magistrate of the Canton of Vaud (le juge d'instruction cantonal) that the investigation had disclosed that 13 persons were implicated in the assassination and that all of them carried Iranian official passports with a description “charg6 c ia mission”. 254. On 28 May 1990, a reply was received from the Government of the Islamic Republic of Iran to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 12 May 1990 concerning the alleged imminent execution of a person named Khalil Nahai, stating that more information on the case would be required for further investigation. OEe Special Rapporteur requested the source for further information on the case. By the time of preparation of this report, no such information had been received from the source. 255. On 31 flay 1990, a reply was received from the Government of the Islamic Republic of Iran to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 27 April 1990, stating that according to article 37 of the constitution of the Islamic Republic of Iran and as contained in the second paragraph of article 14 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, no person shall be considered guilty by law unless the accusation against him is proved by a competent court and the courts are naturally obliged to act accordingly, that in the light of information received by the Islamic Revolutionary Court, those F people were arrested and tried in accordance with law and that they were entitled to appoint an attorney and they duly and freely defended themselves during the trial. 256. It was further stated that the sentences issued in accordance with the law could be reviewed in the Supreme Court, that after the issuance of the F verdicts all the accused requested for a review by the court of appeal and that the verdicts of two of the accused were referred to another court for re—examination. 257. It was also stated that as the Special Representative of the Commission on Ruman Rights on the situation of human rights in the Islamic Republic of Iran mentioned in his report to the Commission on Thuman Rights (EICN.4/1990f 24, pare. 245), the trials in all courts including the revolutionary courts were guaranteed by due process of law. 258. On 6 June 1990, a reply was received from the Government of the Islamic Republic of Iran to the Spec!al Rapporteur's cable of 26 January 1990, denying ; the allegation of the irrmiinent execution of 900 drug traffickers. It was stated that, according to the judicial procedures of the Islamic Republic of Iran, the accused should go through different stages of trial and after the : issuance of the verdict by the court, it was to be implemented in due time and that the allegation, therefore, that the 900 persons (drug traffickers) were
El CN • 4/1991/36 page 67 waiting for execution was baseless. While rejecting the allegation of summary trials of criminals and drug traffickers, it was emphasized that by examining the files of those who were tried in special courts for drug trafficking and were condemned to death, the period of their trial took at least seven months and at most four and a half years, proving the allegation of summary trials groundless. It was stated that there were exceptional cases which were not related to drug trafficking but heinous and abominable crimes against the morals of the society, and that in such cases, instruction was given to the judiciary to speed up the trials while taking into account all regulations and procedures in accordance with law. 259, It was further stated that the right of the accused to hire a legal counsellor for defence in court procedures was recognized in the judicial system of the Islamic Republic of Iran and that in case the accused far one reason or another was unable to do so the court was obliged to hire a counsel for him or her on conditIon that the former accepts to defend the latter. 260. It was also stated that after the issuance of the verdict the accused had the right of appeal and the court was compelled to review the verdict and that in addition the head of the Supreme Court and Attorney—General could review the case. Therefore, it was stated that the allegation regarding the absence of right of the accused to ask for a review of the verdict was not valid. 261. The reply requested the Special Rapporteur to communicate to the Government any particular allegation with regard to a person or persons, so that more detailed investigations could be conducted and the results could be communicated to him. 262. On 19 December 1990, a reply was received from the Government of the Islamic Republic of Iran to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 26 July 1990 referring to the assassination on the outskirts of Geneva, Switzerland, of Dr. Kazem Radjavi allegedly by agents acting under the orders of the Iranian Government. OEe reply stated that the Government had condemned this act of murder despite numerous terrorist and murderous activities committed by the group represented by the deceased, noting that journalists who had made the same slanderous allegations as the Special Rapporteur had legally been charged on the basis of the Swiss Penal Code. The reply further protested the letter of the Special Rapporteur, demanding immediate rectification of the same, adding that the Special Rapporteur's letter of 26 July had not been sent to Tehran owing to its serious slanderous allegations. 263. On 3 January 1991, another reply was received from the Government of the Islamic Republic of Iran to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 27 April 1990 informing him that Bahman Agahy, Jainshead Amiry Bigvand, ilooshang Amjadi Eigvand, Manoucher Azar, Masoud Deadehvar, Kyanoosh Hakeany, Gahrsxnan Malekzadeh and Masoud Payaby had been imprisoned for their crimes and were enjoying full constitutional rights. Their relatives had been Informed of theIr respective situations. The reply stated further that Ardeshear Ashraf, Bahrsm Ikany and Heshinatollah Magsoody had been charged with espionage act1vIt es , Following the implementatIon of a full and complete due process of law, they were convicted of the charges and the final verdict, the death sentence, had been carrIed out accordingly.
E ICN .4 / 1991 / 36 page 68 264. On 4 January 1991, another reply was received from the Government of the Isl amic Republic of Iran to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 12 December 1990 noting the issue about which a protest had been made by its letter of 19 December 1990 and which the Government had addressed publicly by its response to the press release of the magistrates of the Canton of Vaud of Switzerland. 265, The reply stated that the holding of any sort of passport by any number of persons did not constitute an allegation, noting further that all investigations by the Swiss authorities into the issue in question had been inconclusive. The reply therefore deplored, although in a modified manner, the Special Rapporteur's reference to this matter as an allegation which had serious legal bearings in an official correspondence. 266. OEe reply also noted that among the other cases cited in the Special Rapporteur's letter of 26 July 1990, those which were referred to as allegations of surmnary or arbitrary executions falling within the Special Rapporteurs mandate were not valid. The reply referred the Special Rapporteur to detailed information which had been provided to the Special Representative on the situation of human rights in the Islamic Republic of Iran, adding that it did not seem appropriate that the same information should be presented as allegations by two representatives of the same Coimnission on Human Rights simultaneously. 267. In addition, the reply stated that the letter of the Special Rapporteur advanced allegations based upon information from the most unreliable sources. Moreover, on the cases of assassination, it was stated that the Government of the Islamic Republic of Iran condemned any act of terrorism and assasstnation and that the cases, which had been mentioned in the letter, most likely had occurred as a result of an internal power struggle in the associated organizations or groups. 268. Finally, the reply noted that Mr. Ghasemloo was killed while In the process of reconciliation with Iran, a matter which, it was stated, had angered certain terrorist groups. No specific information was available on other cases of assassination mentioned in the letter. OEe reply demanded, therefore, that the Special Rapporteur should provide substantial evidence to justify his reference to these CA I n a al legations and should otherwise take immediate steps to rectify the situation. 269. On 8 February 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of Iraq concerning the information that large numbers of persons, including unarmed civilians and army deserters had been killed or wounded as a result of military attacks by government forces in southern Iraq between 10 and 23 January 1990. Troops were said to have attacked over 30 towns and villages in the south. Affected areas were said to include al—OEawrs, 1 1mm al—Shuwainj and al—Bazun (al—Basra province); al—Majar, al$lukalabiyya, al—Sharira and al—Makers (al—'Amara province) and al—Jabayish, al'Umaid!yya, Abu Hadida and al—Mawajed (al—Nasiriyya province). AccordIng to the reports military action in the area was said to be continuing and the life of the civilian population to be in danger.
E/CN.4 1 1991/36 page 69 270. The Special Rapporteur, referring to article 6 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights to which Iraq Was a party, felt compelled to appeal to the Government on a purely humanitarian basis to ensure that the right to life of the civilians in the affected areas be protected in every possible manner. 271. On 13 Narch 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Iraq concerning the information that Mr. Farzad Bazoft, a citizen of the United Kingdom and a journalist for the British newspaper OEe Observer, had recently been sentenced to death by a revolutionary court and was facing imminent execution. According to the reports, Mr. Eazoft had been arrested on 15 September 1989 in Baghdad airport after carrying out an inquiry into an explosion at an ammunition factory in al—Iskandria. He had been put on secret trial and convicted of spying after he had reportedly confessed on Iraqi television to working for Israeli intelligence. Furthermore, Mr. Bazoft had allegedly been denied the right to a fair and public trial, and in particular the right to have his conviction and sentence reviewed by a higher tribunal. 272. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur, referring to articles 6 and 14 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights to which Iraq was a party and also to safeguards 5 and 6 of the annex to Economic and Social Council resolution 1984/50 of 25 May 1984 entitled “Safeguards guaranteeing protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty' t , appealed to the Government to make every effort to guarantee the right to life of Mr. Farzad Bazoft and requested information on the case and, in particular, on the legal proceedings according to which Mr. Bazoft had been sentenced to death. 273. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Iraq transmitting allegations that in 1989, several persons were executed without trial or after a trial of a summary nature. OEe following cases were described: (a) On 17 July 1989, at Hitteen military base in Antara, 16 soldiers, who had deserted during the war and later turned themselves in upon the announcement of the amnesty decree in September 1988, were executed after having been tortured. Among the 16, the names of 11 were given as follows: Majid Eani, Jasim Metasher Ibrahint, Khahan AlL Lussain, Salah Kradi Ajlan, Aghab Oda Sarhan, Gazi Sherji, Gedan Rehima Lafta, Falib Jas5m Matter, Mohammed Jabbar Shiash, Mohammed Lealbi Salib and Nab! Tuuma OEijeel; (b) Several military officers were executed in Baghdad in early January 1989 after having been arrested in December 1988 for an alleged couv attempt. OEe following officers were said to have been among the executed: Brigadier Hikmet Aplow, Brigadier Abdul Kadir Al—Shallawi, Brigadier Mohammed Mahmood and Lieutenant Colonel Sameer Sa'adalla (Air force); Cc) In addition, !n 1989, in Baghdad, Kadhum Jabbar, a student at the College of Literature, Foreign Languages Department, Baghdad Univers!ty, who had been arrested seven years ago, was executed. 274. On 5 october 1990 a cable was sent to the Government of Iraq concerning the information received that since 2 August 1990, in Kuwait, scores of unarmed civilians had been killed or executed in a suirsuary manner by members
EICN.4/1991/36 page 70 of the Iraqi forces. According to the information, a number of persons had been killed for failing to replace photos of the Emir with those of the President of Iraq. Some others had reportedly been hanged on the grounds of Kuwait university for their suspected opposition against the annexation of Kuwait after being accused of criminal offences. Furthermore, it was reported that since the introduction, on 11 August 1990, of the death penalty for harbouring Western nationals, looting and hoarding food for commercial purposes, one Kuwaiti national had been executed in September 1990 for harbouring an American citizen. Ten persons were said to have been executed for looting. 275. In view of the above—mentioned information, the Special Rapporteur, expressing his serious concern for the lives and safety of civilians i t t Kuwait, appealed to the Government to ensure that the right to life of civilians in Kuwait be protected in every possible manner and requested information from the Government on the above—mentioned reports. 276. On 30 October 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Iraq transmitting allegations of violations by Iraqi forces in Kuwait of tile Fourth Geneva Convention relative to the Protection of Civilian Persons in Time of War including violations of the right to life. Cases of violations of the right to life were reported as follows: (a) Adel Al—Dashti; (b) Ahmed Hamza; Cc) Mohammed A u; (d) Issa; and Ce) Abdulhadi. All were hospital staff of the Al—Addan hospital in Kuwait on 9 September 1990 who were arrested and reportedly tortured when two wounded Iraqi military were admitted to the hospital and according to the Iraqi officials, inadequately attended. (f) Bader Rajab, manager of the Al—Sabahiya supermarket, shot dead by Iraqi forces when he reportedly refused to obey demands for foodstuff. 277. On 6 November 1990, another letter was sent to the Government of Iraq, transmitting alleged cases of summary or arbitrary executions in Iraq. The issues raised were as follows: (a) In mid—April 1989, at Dibs garrison near Kirkuk, at least seven Kurds were reportedly executed for their alleged links to the Pesh Merga forces. The seven executed were named as follows: Saber Sa'di, Qader Sa'di, ‘Abdallah Mala Muhammad, Darwish Mala Muhammad, ‘Abd al—Karim Chitto, Saber Hamad and Hatem Hamad. The executed were said to have returned to Iraq from Turkey in order to benefit from the amnesty decrees promulgated in September 1988; (b) On 11 July 1990, Jalfi Mahdi Saleh al—Nu'aimi, a naturalized Swedish national was reportedly executed by hanging, after having been sentenced to death on 30 April 1990 by the Revolutionary Court in Baghdad for “having connections with a secret intelligence organization”. It was alleged that Jalil Mahdi Saleh al—Nu'aimi. had been held in pre—trial detention for some eight months, that his trial before the RevolutIonary Court was held in_s mera, that his right of defence was either severely curtailed or denied altogether and that he had no right to appeal against the verdict nor the sentence. 278. In addition, further information was transmitted concerning alleged killings and executions ln Kuwait by members of the Iraqi forces since 2 August 1990. According to several eyewitnesses, killings and executions by
.i!f E/CN.4/1991/36 page 71 the Iraqi forces in a summary manner outside the context of armed conflict were widespread. The number of those killed or executed was said to be very high although no exact figures were given. The victims included Kuwaiti men, women and children and a number of foreigners. r 279. The following incidents in Kuwait City which were said to have occurred in August and September 1990 were reported by witnesses as follows: (a) A man was shot dead by Iraqi soldiers after he was forced to watch his wife raped by the same soldiers; (b) A man suspected of being a member of the resistance was shot dead by Iraqi soldiers after having been tortured in order to extract information on the resistance; Cc) At the entrance of Sabah Maternity Hospital, a woman in labour, being prevented by soldiers to enter, was bayoneted through her stomach; (d) Two boys were executed in a market place by Iraqi soldiers in full view of their mother, sister and brother who were called out of the house; Ce) The Imam Khalik Ad—Samhan, who delivered a speech at a mosque in a Friday ceremony, condemning the Iraqi invasion, was tortured and shot dead. His body was dumped near the mosque. An Isla mic scholar named Mahxnood Khalifa al—Jasim was tortured and killed at the Salimyia area; C E) A Xuwaiti military officer was publicly executed in front of his family's home after having been tortured for 10 days. The had been arrested when he was discovered while in hiding; (g) Fifteen people were executed after Iraqi forces extracted the names of the 15, said to be in the resistance movement, from a man by torturing him; (h) At the Mubarak El Kabeer Hospital, all the patients, most of whom were in a serious condition, were removed by Iraqi soldiers from their beds into the hospital corridors by force. Blood transfusions were prohibited, life support machinery removed and other vital medical treatment denied, resulting in the death of half of the patients; Ci) At Salimiya area, several persons were castrated and hanged; (3) At the Al—Adan hospital, 15 premature babies in incubators were taken out of the incubators by Iraqi soldiers and left on the floor to die; 00 On 8 August 1990, a group of some 35 women and youths demonstrating in the Jabiriyya dIstrIct were fired at by Iraqi soldiers. Two boys aged 13 and 16 and a 20—year—old woman were killed; (1) On 11 August 1990, Douglas Croskery, a British national was reportedly shot dead by Iraqi soldiers as he attempted to leave Kuwait for Saudi Arabia. On 21 August 1990, three Pakistanis were also reported to have been killed under similar circumstances.
E/CN.4/1991/36 page 72 260. On 12 December 1990, another letter was sent to the Government of Iraq concerning two incidents of killings in Kuwait by members of the Iraqi forces which were reported as follows: (a) On 9 September 1990, at Al Addan hospital, five hospital staff were arrested, tortured and then executed by Iraqi military personnel, on the pretext that the staff had been lax in attending to injured Iraqis. The names of the victims were given as: Mel Al—Dashti, Ahn,ed Hamza, Mohammed Mi and two identified as Issa and Abdulhadi; . (b) Bader Rajab, manager of the Al—Sabahiya supermarkert, was executed for refusing to obey demands by the Iraqi forces for foodstuff. 281. On 13 February 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Iraq to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 8 February 1990, denying all the information contained in the cable. It also stated that the area referred to in the cable had been and was still open for Iraqis and foreigners. 282. On 26 and 27 March 1990, replies were received from the Government of Iraq to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 13 March 1990 concerning the execution of Farrad Bazoft, stating that Batoft was not subjected to any ill—treatment or coercion while in detention, that he confessed on television that he had been involved in spying activities for the Israeli Mossad against Iraq at a time when Iraq and Israel are in a state of war and that Bazoft stated his confessions in a written statement which he wrote in English, and then restated them in front of the British Consul in Baghdad. 283. It was also stated that Bazoft had a fair trial which was conducted in accordance with Iraqi law, that he was defended in a court of law by a lawyer appointed by the British Embassy and that the trial was attended by the British Consul in Baghdad. 284. The reply further stated the following: (a) He was an Iranian national residing in the United Kingdom since 1975. He carried British travel documents and worked for The Observer of London; (b) He visited Iraq on six occasions in April 1988, May 1986, July 1968, December 1988, February 1989 and September 1989. He was arrested while on his last visit; (c) Investigation revealed a number of facts to which Bazoft confessed during questioning and which he then stated both in writing and on television. These facts are as follows: (i) Dazoft had been recruited by the Israeli Mossad and British intelligence (the secret police) and been working for them since 1984; (ii) Bazoft had been instructed to carry out a number of missions inside Iraq using his cover as a journalist, He had received E600 for this purpose. His job was to take and obtain photographs of Iraqi military sites and military commanders, and to gather information
E/CN.4/199 1 136 page 73 and aubnit his own analysis in relation to a number o installations and activities in Iraq, such as the Iraqi nuclear reactor, the use of chemical weapons and the general and economic situation in the country. During his repeated visits to Iraq, Bazoft submitted many reports containing whatever information he could obtain on these matters; (iii) On his last visit to Iraq, Bazoft had been instructed to collect information on the subject of the explosion that had taken place at an industrial military facility near the city of Hula. OEis was, of course, totally incompatible with the subject which he had been invited by the Iraqi authorities to cover, namely “the elections of the Legislative Council of the autonomous Kurdistan region in northern Iraq”. In order to accomplish his espionage mission, Bazoft was assisted by Mrs. Daphne Parish, a British nurse working in Baghdad, to get to the explosion area in her own car disguised as an Indian doctor. He was able to take soil samples from the area along with various bits of material which he was planning to send to London; (iv) As soon as questioning was completed, the Consul at the British Embassy in Baghdad was granted permission to meet Bazoft on purely humanitarian grounds. Bazoft was not a British subject, which means that the Iraqi Government was wider no obligation to grant the British Embassy access to him under the Vienna Convention or any other agreement. The British Consul had four meetings with the prisoner, three of which were attended by the lawyer appointed by the British Embassy to conduct his defence. OEe British Consul was also invited to attend the proceedings of the whole trial, which began on 8 March 1990 and were completed on 10 March 1990. OEe defendant and his lawyer had been given ample time to prepare their case; (v) As regards Nurse Daphne Parish, she had collaborated with Bazoft and helped him, on no legal or professional grounds, to get to the area he had wanted to see and assisted him in obtaining information and material. Prior to her trial, the Iraqi authorities had granted her permission to have four consular meetings three of which were attended by the lawyer the British Embassy had appointed to conduct her defence. 285. On 30 March 1990, a communication from the Government of Iraq was received by the Special Rapporteur, enclosing a statement issued by Organization of Friendship, Peace and Solidarity in Iraq concerning the execution of Farzad Bazoft. 286. On 31 July 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Iraq to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 26 July 1990 stating that the allegations transmItted were totally unfounded. 287. On 18 December 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Iraq to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 5 November 1990, stating that the Iraqi authorities had not taken any measure sgainst persona benefiting from any of the amnesty decrees, including the decree promulgated in 1988 and that all
E/CN.4/1991/3 6 page 714 those who returned to the country were living with their families in the same residential areas in which they had been formerly domiciled. It was also stated that the internal legal measures were applied in the case of all offences conunitted after the expiration of the period of amnesty. 288. With regard to the person named Jalil Mahdi Saleh al—Nu'aimi, a Swedish national of Iraqi origin, it was stated that he was condemned to death and executed in accordance with Iraqi law, under which espionage is prohibited and constitutes high treason punishable by death. According to the reply, the person in question made a confession, acknowledging that he had engaged in espionage for the benefit of a foreign body, namely the Israeli Mossad organization, on whose behalf he had gathered information on Iraq. It was stated that the Swedish Consul at Baghdad attended the investigation and trial proceedings and was also present at the execution and that Jalil Mahdi Saleh al—Nu'aimi enjoyed all the legal safeguards required under Iraqi law, including the appointment by the Swedish Embassy of a lawyer to defend him. 289. With regard to the allegations concerning Kuwait, it was stated that those allegations were untrue and formed part of the campaign conducted by “Imperialist Powers”, whose interests had been prejudiced, with a view to besmirching Iraq's reputation. With regard to the alleged killing of Douglas Croskery, it was stated that the British Embassy at Baghdad was notified, in response to its request, that there would be no objection to its dispatch of a consular off.icial to the area in which the above—mentioned British national was alleged to have been killed in order to seek information concerning his whereabouts. Israel 290. On 9 October 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of Israel stating that on 8 October 1990 on the Temple Mount of the Old City of Jerusalem, 22 persons had been killed when the police and armed Jewish civilians had opened fire on Palestinian demonstrators and bystanders. Although the police had reportedly claimed that a crowd of 2,000 Palestinians had thrown rocks and stones on Jews praying at the Western Wall and had attacked and burned a police station of the Temple Mount, it had been alleged that the Israeli authorities had resorted to an excessive use of force, including live ammunition, to regain control. 291. The Special Rapporteur, feeling concerned with the loss of lives in the incident, appealed to the Government of Israel to take all necessary measures in order to prevent further loss of lives in similar circumstances and requested information on the above—mentioned incident, the outcome of any investigation on the incident and the measures taken by the authorities to prevent the recurrence of such deaths. 292. On 1 November 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Israel transm ttlng allegations that during the past year, numerous incidents of killings were reported in connection with the uprising in the occupied territories. It was stated that according to statistics released on 2 August 1990 by Bettelem, the Israeli Information Centre for Human Rights in
E/CN.4/1991/36 page 75 the Occupied Territories, 676 Palestinians ware shot and killed by security forces since the beginning of the uprising in December 1987 until the end of July 1990. They included 158 children under 16 yearn of age. In addition, 31 Palestinians were said to have been killed by Israeli civilians and 8 were shot and killed by Palestinian collaborators, whereas 10 Israeli Defence Forces (IDF) soldiers and 9 Israeli civilians, including 3 babies, were killed in the territories during the same period. At the sante time there was reportedly an increase in the number of Palestinians killed by other Palestinians for suspected collaboration with the Israeli authorities. According to one source, the number of such killings during the same period was 243. These killings were said to be the results of the prolonged period of Israeli occupation and the unprecedented level of violence it has engendered and many of these deaths in the occupied territories were reported to have occurred during violent clashes between Palestinian protesters and the IDF. However, other persons were allegedly killed by ID? troops during house—to—house searches, at roadblocks, during pursuit after clashes, and in circumstances other than violent clashes. 293. Furthermore, it was alleged that these deaths occurred often in circumstances suggesting excessive use of force or deliberate killings. According to the Betzelem report in July 1990, in almost SO per cent of the cases the ID ? found that soldiers had violated cease—fire orders. The report cited statistics showing that soldiers were indicted for 12 incidents of killing by the end of December 1989. It was also alleged that investigation of killings by the ID? was almost all based exclusively on accounts by soldiers. 29(4. It was also stated that the reports of the Special Committee to Investigate Israeli Practices Affecting the Human Rights of the Palestinian People and Other Arabs of the Occupied Territories to the forty—fifth session of the General Assembly (A145 184, A/45/306 and A 145/576) list 140 incidents of killing by ID? troops and Israeli civilians for the period October 1989 to 10 August 1990. 295. OEe following describe some alleged cases in which troops used force in an excessive or illegal manner: (a) On 5 October 1989, in Bidu, near Jerusalem, Kha led Abu Id , aged 20, was shot in the heart from a distance of two metres when soldiers opened fire at youths manning a barricade; I I ) On 9 October 1989, in Nablus, Nidal al—Habash, aged 22, was killed by troops when masked youths defied a curfew and incited others to demonstrate. It was alleged that he was shot dead from a short distance, after he was wounded and could not escape, and that the troops prevented an ambulance from evacuating him; Cc) On 26 October 1989, in Jabal ya, Ga za. Mel Mabmud Abu Salirn, aged 19, wan kil].ed by troops who opened fire at masked youths.. It was alleged that four soldiers in civilian clothes had entered the camp in a civilian car and opened fire on the youths;
El CN.4/l991/36 page 76 Cd ) On 26 October 1989, in A1—Khadar, Xarim Da'amseh, aged 18, was killed by policemen during a car chase in Beit Jala after he failed to obey an order to stop. According to an eyewitness, a policeman shot Kariin Da'amseh at point—blank range after he surrendered. The police reportedly opened an inquiry; Ce) On 6 November 1989, in Kalkilya, Wa'el al—Haj Rassan, aged 20, was killed by troops as he was trying to cross the border into Jordan. He had been wanted by the security forces since the beginning of the uprising; Cf) On 1 December 1989, in Nablus, Imad Nasser, aged 26, Hanin Tayem, aged 19, and Omar Grafat, aged 28, were killed by a group of soldiers in civilian clothes who entered the casbah of Nablus and opened fire. Masu'd Labada Batiri, aged 15, a passer—by, was also killed; (g) On 20 December 1989, in Gaza, Khaled Abd el Sheikh Ali, aged 27, died in the interrogation ward in the Gaza prison; (h) On 7 January 1990, in Bethlehem, Fahdi Khalil Zabakli, aged 18, died in hospital of wounds sustained the previous month when border policemen shot him in the head while chasing masked youths. It was reported that a film of the incident showed that Fahdi Khalil Zabakli was shot as he was fleeing, without waning shots being fired; Ci) On 5 April 1990, in Jalazua camp, Mustafa al—Jan, aged 15, was killed by troops who fired a rubber—coated steel pellet during a clash. It was alleged that he was shot by a sniper deliberately and without provocation, without waning or an order to halt; C i) On 7 July 1990, at the Ofer detention camp near Rasnallah, Sahri Abed Rabo, aged 18, was shot in the head and killed by troops wh n he was spotted climbing over the fence of his tent compound. The troops reportedly shouted warnings and fired in the air before firing at the detainee. The incident was said to be under investigation; (k) On 10 August 1990, in Ya'abad, Basel Haniarsheh, aged 22, was shot in the head and killed by a soldier. He had been wanted for two years. 296. On 22 October 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Israel to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 9 October 1990 with regard to the events of 8 October 1990 on the Temple Mount, stating that a special committee of inquiry had been established to investigate the case. Malawi 297. On 26 July 1990 a letter was sent to the Government of Malawi transmitting an allegation that in March 1989 Fred Sikwese, an employee at the Ministry of External Affairs, died at Lilongwe prison after having been arrested in February 1989 on suspicion of passing confidential govenunent information to sources outside the country. Reportedly no charges have been brought against him. He was allegedly tortured prior to his death and was buried at Lilongwe prison grounds after the authorities reportedly refused to release his body for burial by his relatives. It was further alleged that no investigatIon was undertaken with regard to his death.
E/CN.4/1991/36 page 77 298. On 5 December 1990 a reply was received from the Government of tialawi to the Special Rapporteur!s letter of 26 July 1990, stating that with regard to the ease of Fred Sikwese, the verdict of the coroners inquest concluded that his death was due to hepatitis and not as a result of torture as alleged. It also stated that he was not arrested on suspicion but caught in flagrante delicto , passing on government information to agents of foreign powers, and that charges were not brought against him because he died at Kamuzu central hospital before the matter was taken up by the court. Mali 299. On 5 November 1990, ti letter was sent to the Government of Mali transmitting allegations that following armed attacks by Tuaregs in north—eastern districts of the country in late June and July 1990 in which over 150 government officials and civilians were reportedly killed, government troops took reprisals against Tuareg civilians and killed some 120 persons. It was alleged that in a state of emergency and a curfew declared on 20 July 1990 in the north—eastern districts of Gao, Kidal, M&naka and Tlmbuktu, the police and military were authorized to use armed force with immunity from prosecution in advance for acts connnitted in the exercise of emergency powers. 300. Incidents of execution included the following: (a) On 3 August 1990, in Gao, 11 Tuaregs, including a woman, were executed after having been tortured. One of the victims was named as Khassan ag Mahmoud, a chauffeur—mechanic; (b) On 6 August 1990, Sn M6naka, four Tuaregs were executed, including Akhmed ag Makhakha, aged 80, a leader of a Tuareg group, the Ichadanharen, and issouf ag Dandan, an official in Tidaghrnen of the ruling party, the Union d&mocratique cli i peuple mallen; Cc) Four Tuaregs were executed in Kidal, including Intlyaden ag flabakar; Cd) Two Tuaregs were executed in Tin Essako, Kidal district, including Sidakhmad ag tfmana; Ce) Nine Tuaregs were executed in Tamesna, including Dachar ag Khaxnadin, a 10—year—old boy. 301. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Mali. Ma tir it an Ia 302. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Mauritania transmitting allegations that in the southern part of the country villagers were killed by members of the National Guard in a summary manner. OEese killings have allegedly taken place since April 1989, following interconununal violence. Killings reportedly occurred not only during curfew hours but also outside them. OEe victims were allegedly suspected of hav Ing clandestine contact with groups based In Senegal opposing the Government. No investigations by the polIce or judicial author Ities concerning the killings were said to have been carried out.
E / CN.4/ 1991 / 36 page 75 303. The following cases were described: (a) In October 1989, Hadiya B3, a teacher at Kalignoro and municipal council member in Boully town, was killed by members of the National Guard; (b) In November 1989, in Guiraye—R wo village, Ka di region, Dj6ol Demba Sa n, aged 57, a cattle herder, his son Daidou Sarr, aged 20, and Kadiata Sarr were killed by members of the National Guard; (c) In 1989, in Wotji. village, Abon Sara Diop, Namadou Idi Nap and three brothers were killed by members of the National Guard; (d) On 5 March 1990, outside the village of Dj6ol, Abdoul Bouka N'diaye, aged 30, a former soldier, and Masnadou Gninguel N'diaye, aged 19, were killed allegedly after torture by the National Guard during custody; Ce) In January 1990, in Dj&ol, Haniady Djouma B , aged 50, a fisherman, was killed by the National Guard when he left the village early in the morning, apparently while curfew was still in force; (f) On 10 April 1990, outside the village of Moujdi, in S 1ibaby District, seven villagers were killed by members of the armed forces and of a militia working closely with the armed forces, after having been detained and taken away from the village. Among the seven victims were Silly Youm Ba, aged 67, from Moujdi village; Deya Sow, from Moujdi village; and Demba Mamadou Sow, from Wendou—Goub& village; (g) On 12 April 1990, OEierno SaOEatou ?.&, aged 57, a Muslim religious leader from the village of Ngoral—Guidal, near Bogh , was shot dead by members of the National Guard, after he had taken a swim in the Senegal river. On 21 October 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Mauritania to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 26 July 1990 stating that the laws in force in Mauritania respected and protected the right to life of all citizens and individuals within the territory. 305. It further stated that the judiciary guaranteed the respect for national legislation and that all actions of those responsible for the application of the law was submitted to regular control through which abuses were punished in accordance with the national law. It finally stated that all complaints were heard by the courts and that this recourse was available to all citizens and individuals within the territory. 306. On 6 November 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Mauritania transmitting allegations that during the first half of 1990, in the southern part of the country, an increasing number of persons belonging to a black ethnic group, the Hal—pulaar, were killed by the army and National Guard as well as the Haratine militia. A large number of victims, almost all unarmed villagers, were said to be inhabitants of towns and villages along the Mauritanian bank of the Senegal river. Killings allegedly took place during searches in villages by members of the security forces and Haratine militia after raids by armed groups from Senegal or Mali or after villagers fled to these two countries to escape from the security forces.
E/CN.4/l991/36 page 79 307. It was further alleged that the security forces and the Haratine militia responsible for these killings were given total immunity and that none of these killings were allegedly investigated by the judiciary authorities. 308. The following incidents of killing were reported: (a) On 10 April 1990, in Moudji, near S&lIIaby, seven persons, including : , Silly Youm B&, aged 47, and Mamadou Demba Sall, aged U, were arrested by a patrol of soldiers and Haratine militia. They were taken some kilometres from the village and executed; (b) On 20 April 1990, in Woyndonyoli, near S&libaby, some 60 armed Haratines, escorted by two soldiers, arrested 15 persons and executed 4 of them, including Harouna Ousmane Sow and Adama Souleymane B . OEe soldiers then took away the remaining 11 persons, 1 of whom, including Adaina Owner P1 db, were subsequently executed; Cc) On 1 May 1990, in Belendendi, near Laqceiba—Gorgol, in Ka di region, Die Bocar Hainadi, aged 30, was killed by National Guardsmen stationed at Ta lhaya; . Cd ) On 13 June 1990, in Ganki village nar Boghe, Sil ye Lain, aged 30, was arrested by members of the National Guard shortly before a nightly curfew came into force, and was taken together with OEierno N'Gom, another villager. The following morning, SiOEye Lam was found shot dead. 309. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Mauritania . Mexico 310. On i i July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Mexico transmitting the following allegations: (a) On 21 May 1990, in Sinaloa, Norma Corona Sapiens, aged 38, President of the Commission for the Defence of Human Rights in Sinaloa and President of the Coleglo de Abogados Clemente Vizcarra (Clemente Vizcarra Lawyers' Association), was killed by unidentified armed men. In March 1990, she had allegedly received death threats from members of the Federal Judicial Police (PJF). Norma Corona had been conducting investigations into a number of cases allegedly involving agents of the Federal Judicial Police (PJF). These investigations included the deaths in Sinaloa of three Venezuelan and one Mexican lawyer earlier that year. The bodies of the four lawyers were found in a common grave on 11 March 1990, showing signs of torture and gunshot wounds. They had been abducted from their homes in Culiac n, capital of Sinaloa, on 22 February 1990, and were allegedly killed at the headquarters of the PJF in CuliaIIn; (b) Andr s Martinez Diaz, aged 23, a fisherman from Rio Grande, municipality of Tututepec, Oaxaca State, was arrested on 8 February 1989 allegedly by a sub—lieutenant of the armed forces. Witnesses saw Diaz in military custody, showing signs of torture, On 9 August 1989, the Government reported that fiat was found dead in Cacalote, Tututepec;
E/CN.'+/199 1/36 page 80 (c) On 4 September 1989, in Villahermosa, Tabasco State, several persons including Jesus Martinez Ruiz, were detained by the Federal Judicial Police (PJF). Some days later the body of Ruiz was found at the Rancheria Sabina cemetery, in Centro municipality. It was alleged that Ruiz died as a result of torture during detention at the offices of the Federal Judicial ‘ Police (PJF). : . ! 311. On 25 July 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of Mexico concerning ‘ Investigator Jorge C. CastaLeda, member of the Governing Council of the Mexican Committee for the Defence and Promotion of human Rights, said to have received death threats through his secretary, Marina Rodriguez Villegas, who was stopped by four armed persona, questioned about the movements and the private domicile of Mr. Castaaeda and his family, and told that he would be killed if he “persisted with what he was writing', a reference to articles in the press in which Mr. Castafleda had attacked police involvement in drug trafficking. It was also reported that Ms. Rodriguez Villegas had been stopped a second time and threatened with death in a road accident if she continued to collaborate with the investigations which had been taking place to identify those responsible for the threats. 312. Information had also been received concerning the case of Mr. Victor Clark AlE arc, who had published accounts of the alleged torture of minors. He had received a death threat by telephone on 13 June 1990 and believed that those responsible were members of the security services involved in the events he had described in his accounts. 313. Serious concern was particularly expressed for the lives of these people, since, according to them, another human rights activist had been killed in Sinaloa State after receiving threats. Such actions created a climate of insecurity and violation of human rights, in which human rights activists were allegedly singled out as victims. 314. OEe Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take all measures at its disposal to protect the right to life of the two persons threatened with death, and requested information in this regard. 315. On 9 November 1990, another letter was sent to the government of Mexico transmitting several cases of killings instigated by various incidents but signalling, according to the reports, underlying problems in the system which despite Goverment initiatives required further attention. OEree patterns of killings are described as follows: (a) Reports of killings of peasants or indigenous people in the context of land disputes affecting particularly the Triqui people of tJni6n de los Angeles in the State of Oaxaca as follows: (I) Paulino Martinez, founder of the Movimiento de Uniflcacidn >‘ Lucha Triqui (MIJLT) (Movement for Triqui Unification and Struggle), and h s nephew, Bonifacio Merino Delia, were ambushed and killed on 23 January 1990 in Rio Logarto, 0a caca, as they collected signatures to organize a Triqui co—operative for direct sale of their coffee harvests. According to reports, Mr. Martinez had publicly critized and made a formal complaint against local landowners in December 1989 for their alleged involvement in varLous attacks against MULT members;
E/CN.4/ 199 1136 page 81 (ii) Manuel Velazco Ortega, aged 39, member of MUtT, on 22 February 1990 was shot dead in his home by individuals wearing police uniforms. His wife reportedly filed complaints with the Public Ministry agent and the Attorney—General for the State. of Oaacaca. According to information received an autopsy was not performed and no investigation took place; (iii) Jos Antonio Sim6n Zamora, aged 32, an officer of the Uni6ri Nacional de Organizaciones Regionales Carapesinas Aut6nomas (UNORCA) (National Union of Regional Organizations of Autonomous Peasants) 1 was killed on 1 February 1990 in his home in fltzcuaro, Michoac n, by individuals wearing military clothing; (iv) Santiago tierino Hern6.ndez, aged 30, member of MULT, was shot dead on 2 May 1990 in Oaxaca after having been harassed and threatened. Another MULT member was wounded, MULT filed a complaint with the secretary of the Ministry of the Interior. Reports indicate no investigation has taken place; (v) In addition, Juan Domingo flrez Castillo, aged 41, member of MULl, was continually threatened since an attempt on his life by a well—known gunman in 1989. Several complaints were filed with local authorities, but no investigation was known to have been initiated. (b) Killings in the context of political elections have also taken place. According to reports, no efforts were made by the Partido Revolucionario Ins titucional (FRI—affiliated authorities to investigate the following cases: Ci) Ignacio Murillo Guzman, a candidate of the Partido Revolucionario Democr&tico (PDR) (Democratic Revolutionary Party) in the municipality of Huandacarea, Michoacdn, was killed on 7 January 1990, allegedly by the outgoing secretary of the town council. The Attorney—General had not filed charges in the case; (ii) Adelaido Barrera, tsmael Reyes and Antonio Pablo Victoriano, members of the flD, were killed on 13 January 1990 as they left the town bail of Durazno, Guerrero, where they discussed with authorities a postponement of municipal elections in Tixtia. No investigation of the case was initiated; (iii) Salvador GonIIlez and Cipriano Chacon, members of the PRD, were killed on 19 January 1990 in front of the municipal government building in Jungapeo, Michoacan, allegedly by FRI gunmen; (iv) Jav er Macisa Salacedo was killed on 23 January 1990 by FRI members ‘ in 3acona, Michoacdn, after a dispute concerning local taxes; (v) Santos Hern&ndez Garcia, watchman of the local FRD, was killed on 23 January 1990 n Coyuca, Cuerrero;
E/CN.4/1991/36 page 82 (vi) Florentino Salmer6n Garcia and Donasiano Rojas, members of the PRD, were killed on 27 February 1990 i i i a confrontation between the PRD and pollee during a peaceful march for which permission from authorities had been granted (Garcia in Zihuatanejo and Rojas in Acapulco). (c) Other reported cases are as follows: (i) lMctor Ignacio Quijano Santoyo, Jaime Quijano Santoyo and Erik Dante Quijano Santoyo, three brothers, were shot dead on 14 January 1990 in Ojo de Agua, M xico, at clone range by members of the Policia Judicial Federal (PJF) (Federal Judiciary Police) after H6ctor had been detained and allegedly tortured the previous day. Police surrounded their house searching for a fourth brother, a former policeman, accused of killing a policeman; (ii) Agustin Fflix Contreras, aged 35, died on 6 May 1990 after having been detained by the police in Aguililla, Michoac n, on S May 1990 from wounds allegedly sustained during a police confrontation. 316. On 6 August 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Mexico to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 27 June 1989 (see EICN.411990/22, para. 287) in regard to the alleged death threats directed at members of the Union of Indigenous Communities of the Mixed Zone of the Isthmus (UCIZON IO) stating that the competent authorities of the State of Oazaca had conducted an investigation into the death of Cris6foro Jos& Pedro and concluded that the homicide did not constitute a sunmiary or arbitrary execution but a common crime. Two men, Eucario Pimente]. Zacarias and Abad Juan Rodriguez Valdeespino have been arrested and charged with the crime. 32?. On 16 August 1990, another reply was received from the Government of Mexico to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 25 July 1990 concerning the alleged killing of Crist6foro Joa Pedro and the death threats received by Victor Clarke AlE aro and Jorge Castafleda through his secretary Mariana Rodriguez, stating that upon having received the request for intervention, the Government of Mexico Immediately condemned the death threats against Messrs. Alfaro and Castafleda and the courts ordered the necessary protection. It furthermore stated that Ms. Rodriguez identified a photograph of a former agent of the Criminal Investigation Police of the Federal District as one of her assailants, but was unable to identify him in a subsequent lineup. He was released. 318. On 16 August 1990, another reply was received from the Government of Mexico to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 11 July 1990 regarding the following cases: (a) Norma Corona Sapiens: Information was transmitted from the Attorney General of the State of Sinaloa to the effect that an ex—agenc of the Criminal Investigation Department of the State of Sinaloa and three alleged accomplicas had been detained and charged w Ith murder, and that the former had confessed to the crime, OEe case is under the jurisdictIon of the Fourth Criminal Court of Pint Instance;
a _ ———— — .——— ————————— — . —..— . I Ej'CN.4/1991/35 page 83 (b) Andr s Martinez Diet: OEe case remains under investigation by an officer of the assistant military prosecutor's office attached to the twenty—eighth military zone of Oaxaca State. A civil case proceeds under the public prosecutor's office in Puerto Escondido, Juquila in Oaxaca; (c) JesCzs Martinez Ruiz: At the request of the sister of Jes?II Martinez Ruiz, who died on 4 September 1989 when he was detained by the Criminal Investigation Police of the state of Tabasco, the Office of the Attorney—General of Tabasco instituted a further preliminary inquiry. The National Commission for Human Rights requested the Government of the State of Tabasco to provide an in—depth report on the case. 319. On 30 August 1990, a further reply was received from the Government of Mexico, following the above—mentioned reply of 16 August 1990, regarding the case of Jes us Martinez Ruiz. The letter stated that on 17 August 1990, the findings of the preliminary inquiry were transmitted by the Office of the Attorney—General to the competent criminal court judge bringing charges of abuse of authority against five agents of the Judicial Police of Tabasco for the torture and murder of Mr. Martinez , 320. On 3 October 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Mexico regardin& the case of Jesus Martinez Ruiz, transmitting the report and recommendations of the National Commission for Human Rights. The report stated that on 20 August 1990, the Fifth Criminal Court of First Instance ordered the release of the five agents accused of his death on the grounds of insufficient evidence. OEe Office of the Attorney—General of Tabasca appealed to the Superior Court and the investigation was renewed by the Office of the Government Prosecutor for the Federal District. 321. OEe recommendations were as follows: (a) flat an appropriate investigation and further legal action should be taken to remove the Director General of the Judicial Police of Tabasco from his post for his deliberate misrepresentation of facts in the case as found by the Commission's investigation; (b) flat the Prosecutor General for the State desist from appeal against the decision of the Fifth Criminal Court of First Instance of Tabasco; Cc) That on the basis of the new elements provided herewith, a new investigation should be undertaken and the criminal action be reinstituted against the five officers charged; (d) flat bulletins should be provided to all the corresponding State and Federal polIce entities so that those implicated in the case were not rehired; Ce) flat the physical integrity of the Martinez Ruiz and M&rquez Valeazuela fam IlSes should be assured (N rquez Valenzuela remains iu custody); CE) flat documents attesting to the fulfilment of these recommendations should be sent to the National Comm lsaSon for Human Rights . .
El C?4 * 411.991/36 page 84 322. On 18 December 1990 a letter was received from the Government of Mexico transmitting recommendation No. 22 of the National Commission for Human Bights containing the results of the Commission's investigation into the case of Artemic Marcos Hern ndez, concerning which the Government had replied on 25 August 1989 (see E/CN,4/1990/22, para. 294). 323. According to the investigation of the National Commission for Human Rights, Mr. Hern&ndez was killed as a result of his activities as a peasant leader of the regional peasant groups URECHU and WIORCA in San Pedro Huatalingo. Among his activities was the task of obtaining the transfer of land to the peasants of San Pedro Ruazalingo as determined by decisions taken by the Secretary of Agrarian Reform. 324. According to the report, on 13 March, Mr. Hern&ndez was part of a commission of peasants formed to retrieve from the landowner's residence the measuring instrument which was allegedly taken by a gunman working for an important landowner ( jg ) of the region. It was stated that the landowner then threatened Mr. IierrIIndez, saying that he would pay with his life for being the leader of the movement, and that on 9 May 1989 Mr. Herndndez had expressed to friends that something was going to happen because the landowner's gunman was looking for him. 325. The report also stated that on 18 May 1989, an individual arrived at Mr. Hern ndez's home, requesting that he attend a meeting the following day at a specified time and place, the time and place at which his death actually occurred. 326. The report of the investigation further stated that on 1 June 1989 the case was assigned to officials attached to the deputy sub—prosecutor's office and that the case remains in their charge. 327. It was stated that testimonies of witnesses to some of the above—mentioned incidents was taken by the prosecutor's office. The Commission interviewed the Prosecutor General, the deputy prosecutor and the Director of the State Police and determined that, aside from gathering the testimonies and performing a ballistics test, as of 27 June 1989 no other action had been taken in regard to this case, despite the judgement of the Commission that by utIlizing available investigatory measures the death of Mr. Hez-n4ndez and the question of those responsible could be clarified. 328. On 18 December 1990, another letter was received from the Government of Mexico further to its reply of 20 October 1989 (EJCN.4/1990122, pars. 295) to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 10 August 1989 regarding the killing of Pedro HenIIndez Reyes, transmitting information that the case has progressed to the phase of instruction under the judge (jn .zJnizSQ) of the Court of First Instance in Huayacocotta, Veracruz, where formal charges had been filed against the individuals alleged to have been responsible. 329. The letter stated that Mr. Hern&ndez Reyes had been killed by individuals who considered him a traItor to the Campesinos Un ldos de Sierra Oriental (United Peasants of the Sierra Oriental).
B/CM .4/1991/36 page 85 Morocco 330. On 9 November 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a letter to the Government of Morocco, transmitting allegations to the effect that 24 prisoners among the off jeers and non—commissioned off Leers confined in the Tazmamart military prison, in the region of Rich, since August 1973, after being sentenced to terms of imprisonment following charges of attempts on the life of the King in 1971 and 1972, had died as a result of ill—treatment or of the particularly harsh conditions of detention due to inadequate food, sanitary arrangements and medical care. OEe name and rank of the 24 victims are as follows: Allal Mouhaj, sergeant; OEami Abounsi, sergeant; Rachid El Amine, chief warrant officer; Mohaxned Chajaii, sergeant; Driss Eahbah, corporal; Kacem Kasraoui, corporal; Abde l lah Lafraoui, corporal; Abdeslam Rabhi, sergeant; Mohamed Bitti, sergeant; Benaissa Rachidi, sergeant; Mohamed El Abdi, warrant officer; Rabeh Bettioui, quartermaster sergeant; Bouchta Haddane, corporal; Mohamed Chemsi, lieutenant; Akka Itarouch, chief warrant officer; Mahjoub El. Yakdi, lieutenant; Mohamed El Ghali, lieutenant; Flohamed Karoui, lieutenant; Ben R4douane Tijani, lieutenant; Boujemaa Azendour, lieutenant; Jilali Dick, warrant officer; Mohamed Aboulmakoul, warrant officer; Abde laziz Ababou, quartermaster sergeant; Moha Boutou, lieutenant. 331. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Morocco , Mvanmar 332. On 5 November 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a letter to the Government of Myanmar transmitting an allegation that on 8 August 1990, in Mandalay, two monks and two students were shot dead when security forces opened fire on a large number of monks and students who were marching in a peaceful demonstration. 333. On 25 January 1990, a letter was received from the Government of Myanmar, referring to its previous letter dated 13 December 1989 (see E/CN.4/1990/22, paras. 415 to 418) and stating that the State Law and Order Restoration Council had revoked martial law, with effect from 2 January 1990, in 10 townships where the situation had improved sufficiently. 334. On 21 March 1990, another letter was received, transmitting a list of 14 townships in which the State Law and Order Restoration Council had revoked martial law with effect from 11 March 1990. 335. On 7 May 1990, another letter was received, transmitting a list of 30 townships in which the State Law and Order Restoration Council had revoked martial law during the months of March and April 1990. 336. On 16 June 1990, another letter was received, transmitting a list of 102 townships in which the State Law and Order Restoration Council had revoked martial law during the second half of April and the month of May 1990.
E/CN.4/1991/3& page 86 337. On 10 April 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of Nepal regarding the information received that in the situation of political unrest of the preceding several days, at least 50 persons were killed in Katmandu by security forces who had allegedly fired at unarmed demonstrators after failing to control them with batons and tear—gas. Similar incidents of deaths had been reperted in Butwal and Pokhara where seven and two persons were killed respectively. 338. In view of the continuing tense situation of political unrest, the Special Rapporteur, concerned with any further incidents of deaths which might occur, appealed to the Government to take all necessary measures to prevent further deaths in the context of the continuing political situation, and, in this connection, requested information on the above—mentioned incidents and on the Government's effort to avoid further deaths. 339. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Nepal transmitting allegations that since 18 February 1990, during mass demonstrations in several towns, at least 53 persons had been killed in indiscriminate shooting, beating and stabbing by the police. Several persons allegedly died as a result of torture, following their arrest by the police. 340. The following individual cases were described: (a) On 30 March 1990, in Patan, Ratna Kaji Sai, aged 30, and Sagar Singh, aged 20, were killed when police shot at demonstrators; I I) On 2 April 1990, in Kirtipur, tan Bahadur Maharjan, Uira Kaji Maharjan and Bijaya Kurnar were killed as police began shooting indiscriminately into the crowd and beating demonstrators; (c) In April 1990, in Chabahil, Kumar Shrestha was beaten to death; (d) In April 1990, in Baneawor, Lal Bahadur Barn was beaten to death. 341 , At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Nepal. 342. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Niger transmitting allegations that members of the Tuareg ethnic group were killed by Government forces on account of their ethnic origin. 343. The following incidents were given as examples: (a) In May 1990, near In Gal in the north—west part of the country, 40 persona were allegedly killed by Government forces; I I) In May 1990, some SO k llometres north—west of Toh ln Tabaraden, 20 Tuaregs were killed by Government forces while they were building a house; (c) In May 1990, in Tehin Tabaraden, three young persons were killed after they had been arrested.
El CN .4/1991 / 36 page 87 344. In addition, it was alleged that in February 1990, several students were killed during demonstrations. Although the President, who was out of the country at the time of the killings, reportedly denied that the Government ordered force to be used against the students, no inquiry was reportedly known to have been carried out. 345. On 10 December 1990, another letter was sent to the Government of Niger, transmitting allegations that in May 1990, following an attack by Tuaregs on a police static,n in Tchin Tabaraden in which several policemen, a prisoner and two civilians, were killed. According to official sources, some 25 Tuaregs were killed in army attacks on Tuareg camps. Other sources quoted figures ranging between 200 and several hundred. In the nomad camp of Tilla, 50 kilometres from Tchin Tabaraden, a number of Tuaregs were said to have been killed as they tried to escape the army attack. 346. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Niger. Ni eria 347. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Nigeria transmitting allegations that during the preceding year several persons had been sentenced to death by robbery and firearms tribunals established under (special provisions) decree of 1970. There was allegedly no right to appeal to a higher tribunal although those condemned could petition the State Military Governor for clemency. 348. OEe following cases were described: (a) In February 1990, in Minna, Niger State, Umaru Musa, aged 30, was sentenced to death by the robbery and firearms tribunal in Minna; (b) On 28 February 1989, in Owerri, Imo State, Godwin Agu Eke, aged 36, was sentenced to death by the robbery and firearms tribunal in Owerri; (c) In December 1989, in Kano, Kane State, Anda Mohammed, Ansa Mohammed, Hassan Agesha and Sani Sale, all from the Republic of Niger , and Musa Abdullani from the Republic of Mali, were sentenced to death. 349. It was further alleged that several detainees and prisoners died in custody as a result of poor prison conditions: (a) In the beginning of 1990, in Ibadan, Oyo State, seven detainees reportedly died in Agodi Prison before their cases came to court. The names of the seven were given as Henry Chukwu, Agu Okori, Emmanuel Okangba, BrLght Ehis, Akinniyi Ogunfowokan, Addo Frederick and Kajola Olunrebi; (b) The controller of prisons in Lagos State reportedly stated that 273 prisoners had died in the State prisons in 1989 because of a shortage of drugs and vehicles to transport prisoners to hospital and because of overcrowded conditions.
i. . E/CN.4/1991/3& page 88 350. on zi July 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of Nigeria concerning 43 soldiers, including 10 army officers, whose names were transmitted, who had been sentenced to death on 18 July 1990 by a military tribunal for attempting to overthrow the Government. According to the information, the 43 persons had not been given the right to appeal to a higher tribunal. With regard to the 10 officers who had been sentenced to death, the special military court had allegedly not guaranteed the safeguards designed to ensure a fair and impartial trial throughout the legal proceedings: the court was presided over by a member of the Government, the trial was held the defendants were held in incommunicado detention following their arrest and had been tortured, they were not allowed to choose their own defence counsel, and they were not given the right to appeal to a higher tribunal. 351. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur, referring to article 14 of the International Covenant on Civil and ?olitical Rights and to the safeguards guaranteeing protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty adopted by the Economic and Social Council in resolution 1984 /50 of 25 Nay 1984, appealed to the Government of Nigeria to make every effort to ensure that the right to life of the above—mentioned persons be protected and requested information regarding the trial proceedings as a result of which the 43 persons had been sentenced to death. 352. On 10 December 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Nigeria, transmitting allegations of death sentences by the robbery and firearms tribunals as follows: (a) On 9 May 1990, Edet Jonah Ekanem was convicted of armed robbery and sentenced to death by firing squad by the robbery and firearms tribunal in Akwa Ibom State; (b) On 12 July 2990, the robbery and firearms tribunal in Ikeja, Lagos State, sentenced four persons to death. Two of the four, Lateef Lawal and Anthony Bassey, were convicted of an armed robbery committed in August 1985. The other two, Ramoni Jolaosho and Muraina Akinbanmi, were convicted of an armed robbery committed in October 1985; Cc) On 26 July 1990, the military governor of Lagos State announced that he would not commute the death sentences imposed on 12 men in June 1988 by the robbery and firearms tribunal in lkeja, Lagos State. One of the defendants, Augustine Eke, was reported to have been 14 when arrested in 1984. 353. Furthermore, on 27 July 1990, 42 persons, members or former members of the armed forces, were reportedly executed by firing squad after having been sentenced to death nine days earlier by a special military court on charges of involvement in an attempt to overthrow the Government in April 1990. Their petitions for clemency to the Armed Forces Ruling Council (AFRC) were reported to have been rejected. It was alleged that the trial before the special military court was held iiL& me.ni, that a member of the AFRC presided over the court, that the defendants were held incommunicado after their arrest, that some were tortured or ill—treated, that the defendants were not allowed to choose their own defence counsel and that they had no right of appeal to a higher tribunal against their convictions or sentences.
E/CN.4/199l/36 page 89 354. On 13 September 1990, a further 27 persona were reportedly executed by firing siluad after having been convicted for their involvement in the se ine attempt in April 1990 and sentenced to death by the special military court. 355. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received front the Government of Nigeria. Papua New Guinea 356. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Papue New Guinea transmitting allegations that since the Bougainville Revolutionary Army, a rebel group, began its actions in late 1988 on the island of Bougainville, and especially since the imposition of a state of emergency on 26 June 1989, several persons were killed by members of the police and military forces and Borne others died in detention as a result of torture. 357. The following case was given as an example of such cases: On 24 November 1989, Vincent Onari, a maintenance worker at the Bougainville Copper Limited (ECL) mine, was detained together with another man by members of the Papua New Guinea Defence Force and severely beaten before being taken to army camp 10 at Panguna. According to eyewitnesses, Onari, semi—conscious as a result of the beating, was thrown out of a military vehicle onto the ground outside the army camp, kicked and beaten again and was shot in the head. This body was later delivered to the Arawa general hospital. 358. On 13 August 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Papua New Guinea to the Special Rapporteur's above—mentioned letter of 26 July 1990, stating that in regard to allegations of sununary executions by security forces on Bougainville Island in late 1989, although the situation was not yet normalized, where proper and thorough investigation could be carried out the Government was conducting an investigation. It also stated that the Government was considering inviting an independent panel of Australian 3urists to investigate allegations of human rights abuses in Bougainville. . Paragua y 359. On 11 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Paraguay transmitting an allegation that on 12 December 1989 at the Staipti hydroelectric darn project on the Paraguayan/Brazilian border soldiers belonging to III cavalry division opened fire indiscriminately on workers on strike, causing the death of two workers named CernIIn Cardozo Gayoso and Hermenegildo Benitez. 360. On 7 December 1990 a letter was sent to the Government of Paraguay transmitting allegations of several killings having taken place during the year 1990 in the context of disputes over land ownershIp. OEe following cases were cLted by the Special Rapporteur as examples: (a) On 5 August 1990, Nicolds Caceres, aged 3b, member of the Paraguayan Peasant Movement (Novimiento Campesino Paraguayo (Mc ?)), was shot dead by local authorIties, a soldier and four armed civilians near his residence in Nueva Fortuna, Alto ParanA department, allegedly for his aetivitlea as a *— ;--— — - k ka s PM a
E/GN.4/1991/36 page 90 peasant leader. These activities were said to have given rise to tensions between MC ? members and a group of other peasants closely linked to the regional authorities (Delegaci6rt de Gobierno). Mr. Caceres' family presented a format complaint to the court; (b) On 10 May 1990, Francisco Baez G6mez, member of the National Peasant Organization (0rganiza i6n Nacional Campesina (ONAC)), was killed after having been detained by police in Minga Guas , department of Alto ParanL His body, bearing signs of torture, was turned over to his familly on 13 May. His sister instituted a formal complaint against the security forces and police of Ciudad del Este, holding them responsible for Mr. Baez' death. ONAC expressed ita concern to the local authorities (C mara de Diputados), requesting them to take all necessary measures to bring those responsible to justice. 361. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Paraguay. 362. On 17 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Peru transmitting allegations that during the first months of 1990, summary executions in Peru claimed a large number of victims especially in the zones under a state of emergency. According to information received, during the first three months of 1990 approximately 700 deaths were caused by political violence. This period was marked by attacks, acts of sabotage and assassinations perpetrated by armed opposition groups, particularly the Sendero Luminoso (Shining Path). More than half of the deaths caused by political violence in 1989 were attributed to Sendero Luminoso. 363. Nevertheless, numerous reports also pointed to the armed forces, the . ! security forces and paramilitary groups such as the Comando Rodrigo Franco, as responsible for many of the deaths. In the emergency zones, the military maintained control over the population and, reports indicated, frequently carried out incursions against the Sendero Luininoso in which civilians were LJ frequently killed. In regard to reports of peasant deaths in Cayara as well as the killing of several witnesses to the incident, to which the “ Special Rapporteur referred in his reports to the forty—fifth and forty—sixth sessions of the Commission for Human Rights (see E/CN.411989/25, paras. 203, 204, 208, 209 and 210 and EICN.41l990/22, paras. 306, 316 (a), 319 and 320), information was received in 1990 citing a lack of action by State organs charged with carrying out the investigation of these incidents. Particular preocupation was expressed at reports that courts had filed the complaints without exhausting the means available for identifying the individuals or groups responsible for these crimes. 364. OEe Special Rapporteur received information regarding the following fndivfdual cases: (a) Estalisnao Polanco Rojas, Francisco Ramos Bautista, Virgilio : : Barrientos Ramos, Virginio Barrientos Potanco, Esteban Barrientos Vega, Andr s “ , , Nuaznani Polanco, Maaa Bautista Quispe, Franco Ramirez, Clemente Chaupion Barrientos and Ignacio Tito, all peasants, were killed on 27 June 1989 by the : : army for allegedly refusIng to co—operate when an army patrol led by a major and three offficials entered Pasnpaxnarca, Aucara district, Lucanaa province, Ayacucho department, and rounded up all the townspeople in the central plaza;
E ICN.4 1 199l 136 . page 91 (b) Domingo Quispe, aged 95; Cris6stomo Condor! Quispe, aged 58; * Natividad Quispe, aged 90 and Alejandro Quispe Condori, aged 60 all peasants, were killed on 13 June 1989 in Santa Ana, Lucanas, Ayacucho, when an army patrol raided the town. On 26 June 1989, the soldiers returned, threatening and mistreating the townspeople. Casimira Quispe Condor!, aged 114, was allegedly raped by the soldiers in the church and then wounded with a bayonet; (c) Balvino Huamani Medina, aged 60; Marcos Torres Salhua, aged 30; Juan Huisa Pacco, aged 22; Zen6n Huisa Pacco, aged 20; Marcos Zacarias Huisa, aged 33; Gregorio Alferes Trivi o, aged 20; Julio Huatnani Huisa, aged 80; Jos Huninani Charcahuana, aged 28; Julio Apfata Tailire, aged 28; Jes(ss Jauja Sullo, aged 22; Eustaquio Apfata Salhua, aged 28; Hermeregildo Jauja, aged 60; and another indigenous person without identification were killed between 23 and 28 April 1990 by members of the army in Apurimac, Chumbivilcas, Cuzco department, allegedly accused of belonging to Sendero Luminoso. Between 23 and 25 April 1990 a total of 22 persons in Apurimac, Chuchamake and Nanrapate were detained. On 25 April 1990, 11 of those detained In Capallullo were shot dead by six soldiers; the other two were killed in the following days. OEe bodies of all 13 were not exhumed until 6 May 1990, allegedly due to the lack of initiative of both the provincial and local judges. The autopsy showed that all of the bodies bore marks of torture. It was further reported that although the case was denounced to the attorney general, the investigation regarding the incident was at a standstill; (d) On 7 April 1990, Lucio Bautista Tacusi, a student, was shot dead i i Tijuana, Candris, by members of the National Police and the army when they allegedly were confronted by subversive elements; (e) On 1 April 1990, Falconeri Saravia Castilla, president of the Agricultural Federation of Huancavelica and a member of the United Leftist Party and of the municipal council of Santa B&rbara, was found dead bearing bullet wounds and torture marks in a forest, 10 kilometres from Huancavelica. He had been detained on 16 March 1990 by a police agent and taken to the political military command of Huancavelica; (f) Jos6 Burneo Labrin' executive director of the Centre of Studies and Action for Peace (CEAPAZ) and a member of other human rights organizations, reportedly received death threats on 15 February and 16 March 1990 by men dressed in military uniforms who entered his home. He also received telephone death threats during April and May 1990, both in his home and at CEAPAZ headquarters; . (g) Francisco Sober6n Garrido, co—ordinator of the Pro—Human Rights Association (APRODEH), received telephone death threats on 1 March 1990 from members of the paramilitary group Comando Rodrigo France. 365. On 10 August 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of N ru transmitting the following cases: (a) M ximo Rico Baz6n, an official in the legal advisory office of the Ayacucho Development Corporation, was killed at h s home In the city of Ayacucho in the early hours of 19 July 1990 by a group of hooded men who had shot him three times in the head; j'ffl:'.' . —
I I) Fernando Luis Colonio Arteaga, a lawyer at San Cristobal de Humanga National University, had been killed in the early hours of 20 July 1990 at his home on the Maria Parado de Bellido estate in the same city by a group of men who had shot him in the head; (c) Gabriel Tupia Etuamancusi, aged 25, a mining engineering student at the same university, was killed in the early hours of 21 July 1990 by a group of hooded men who had broken into his home on the Mariscal Caceres de Ayacucho estate and shot him in the head. 366. According to the information received, these four murders had been committed at times when no one, except for the security patrols, was allowed on the streets, and it was presumed that those responsible for the murders were paramilitary groups or security forces personnel. 367. It was also reported that the informants were expressing particular concern for the lives and safety of lawyers and members of San Cristobal de Humanga National University, several of whom had been victims of summary executions in July 1990. 368. In connection with these events, the Special Rapporteur, emphasizing that the State bears fundamental responsibility for protecting the lives of persons un its territory, appealed to the Government to take measures to protect the life and the security of lawyers and members of San Cristobal de }iumanga National University, and requested information on the measures taken and on che investigations carried out by the competent authorities in this regard. 369. On 15 August 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of Peru concerning Ciro Aramburu Villanueva, professor of biology and head of the student affairs and welfare office of Huamanga University, who was alleged to have been murdered on Tuesday, 24 July 1990 at 4.00 a.m. by armed men who had broken into his house and also wounded his daughter Alicia Aramburu. 370. Serious concern was particularly expressed regarding this crime, not only because of the identity of the victim but also because it was considered to be the latest of many acts of aggression directed at Euaiuanga University over the last decade, including assaults on the lives and security of teachers, employees and students of the university, as well as attacks on its buildings. 371. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take measures to protect the life and security of the people at the University of Huamanga and requested information on the investigations carried out by the competent authorities regarding the attack on Ciro Aramburu Villanueva and his daughter. . ; _x_ __ 4 372. On 9 october 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Peru concerning incidents in the department of Puno. According to the information received, terrorist acts had been committed in that department by the Sendero Luminoso, such as the murder of National Police colonel Alcantera MorL A specialized police team, acting in co—ordination w Ith the armed forces, carried out various operations in the districts of Orurielo end Nuffios, Melgar Province. It was stated that, as a result of their activities, a number of peasants not belonging to the subversive movement disappeared, others (including two elderly persons) died in dubious circumstances in the community E ICN.4/199l 136 page 92
E/CN.4/1991/36 page 93 of lluancayo and many more, including children at a primary school in the district of Oruritlo, Melgar Province, were subjected to ill—treatment and torture. 373. It was further alleged that the lives and physical Integrity of innocent peasants in the department of Puno were in danger because the forces responsible for the pursuit of the members of the aforementioned armed group were commItting serious violations of human rights. 374. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take measures to protect the life and the security of the peasants of the department of Puno and requested information in this regard. 315. On 6 November 1990, a letter was gent to the Government of Peru transmitting allegations that various new paramilitary groups such as Counterinsurgency Liberation Movement (Movitniento de Liberaci6n Contrainsurgencia), with its base in Ayacucho, had recently surfaced and that white the Sendero Luminoso and the Tupac Amaru Revolutionary Movement (MICA) were responsible for a substantial number of deaths reported in 1990, the armed forces and paramilitary groups were also responsible for violations of the right to life of a large number of political candidates, trade unionists, peasant leaders, and civilians suspected of maintaining contact with terroris groups. 376. Between April and the last week of August 1990, 1,977 deaths due to political violence in Peru were reported; 301 were registered for the month of April alone, with the weeks prior to the presidential and parliamentary elections (8—24 April) reported as the most violent of the decade. It was alleged that members of the armed forces and the ex—military belonging to the paramilitary groups benefited from Almost total impunity for their participation in these killings. The Special Rapporteur referred to the following cases by way of example: (a) On 18 June l990 Jaime Cerr6n Palomino, vice—rector of fluancayo University, and his driver Armando Tapia Cuti rrez were found dead, bearing signs of torture after having been kidnapped on 8 June 1990 at 8.00 a.m. on their way to the university by three armed and hooded individuals driving a blue unmarked van. Security forces maintain strict control of all vehicular traffic in the area, under a state of emergency, where the abduction occurred (1 ,) In the first week of October 1990, a common grave was discovered in an abandoned mine in Cajamaravilla, Caratambo province, department of Lime, bearing the bodies of Milton Adelino Lo u Mauricio, Eteolino Cornelio Abad, Elfer Abad Casimero, Roberto Milton Loli Marfano, Jos Beltr n Chazeo Lo U, Ambrosio Cama. All had their hands bound and had been shot in the head Mr. Loll, director of the Victor Andr&s Belaunde national school, had been kidnapped on 14 flay 1990 in Abelardo Pardo Lezuma, Bolognesi province, Ancash department, by 15 members of the police. The others had been kidnapped on 9 May 1990 in Acos municipality, Cachuapampa, Ancash department, by the DOES 4 377. Between 7 and 21 October 1990, two common graves bearIng the bodies of 54 peasants were discovered in Cahci and Chilcahuayco, Ayacucho department. All the bodies were found shot with military rifles, reportedly by the DOES farces based in fruanta. The discovery of the bodies was reported by family members to the district attorney of Ayacuchc. t ( i I I ________ I . ., 1 • - - I , I
E/CN.4/ 199l136 page 94 378. On 29 November 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of Peru concerning death threats made against Dr. J4vier Diet Canseco, senator of the Unified Mariatequista Party (Partido Unificado Mariatequista) and member of the United Leftist Party (Partico Izquierda Unida), and his Laity allegedly for his Party affiliations, his activities as a member of the Parliamentary Commission set up to investigate the massacres in Chuznbivilcas in April 1990 and San Pedro de Cachi on 18 October 1990, and his membership in the commission to reinstitute the investigation into the alleged Government responsibility in the deaths of some 250 prisoners in three Lima prisons. 379. On 16 November l990,at approximately 2.00 a.m., an explosive was thrown at his house causing material damage. Civilian groups linked to the security forces were reportedly responsible for the threats. I 380. the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take all necessary measures to protect Dr. Mvier Diet Canseco and his family and requested information on the measures taken in this regard. 381. On 4 December 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Peru referring to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 9 October 1990 and providing, as requested, further information concerning allegations of death threats and killings in Orurillo, department of Puno. 382. The information received indicated that between 16 and 21 September 1990, Sendero Luminoso had carried out an offensive in the department of Puno killing a colonel, of the National Police and three members of DOES, as well as forcing members of the Agrarian Co—operative of Workers (CAT) to transport them to the co—operative. 383. It further indicated that, as a consequence, on 27 September 1990, agents of DOES detained Hugo Cornejo and Roger L6pez Quispe and forced them to act as shields during an ensuing confrontation with the Sendero Lurninoso in which both men were killed. During the confrontation, three other armed civilians, Alberta Mayhua, aged 24, Julian Pucamajia, aged 80, and Alejandra Yana, aged 90, were also killed by DOES agents. The following day these peasants' homes were ransacked end burned. Continuing death threats against co—operative members and inhabitants of Orurillo were said to have made these people fear for their lives end safety. 384. OEe Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to investigate the case and to take measures to protect the lives of the persons threatened with death and requested information on the outcome of the investigation as well as on the measures of protection taken by the Government. 383, On 12 January 1990, a cuinnunication ae received trom the Government of Peru providing information concerning the death of Enrique L6pez AibtIjar. i tt was stated that on 9 January 1990, at 9.30 a.m., General L6pez Alb jar, fell victim to a terrorist commando who shot him 15 times, causing his death. General L6pez AlbAjar , 58 years old, was Commander General of the Army, President of the Joint Command of the armed forces, and the first to assume the head of the Ministry of Defence of Peru, which had recently been created under the present cons titutional system of Peru. / / / I
. - .- r EICN.4/199 1 13& page 95 38&. On 16 January 1990, another communication was received from the Government of Peru transmitting information on the ease of Isaias Aylas Gonzales, It was stated that on 13 January 1990, Mr. Ayla.s Gonzales was abducted by terrorist elements, subjected to torture and shot dead in the San Luis de Yalco zone, 15 kilometres north of Ruancayo. Mr. Aylas Gonzales was 37 years old and worked as an engineer in flestxgseatn. 387. On 19 January 1990, another communication was received from the Government of Peru transmitting a list of 38 names of peasant victims of the Orurillo massacre. 388. On l B September 1990, a letter was received from the Government of Peru transmitting cases compiled by the Government regarding violent acts committed by subversive groups during the months from January to June 1990. 389. On 26 October 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Peru to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 9 October 1990 requesting that additional information be provided regarding the incidents of alleged reprisal killings by military forces in the department of Puno. 390. On 22 November 1990, a reply was received to the Special Rapporteurs letter of 1.7 July 1990 transmitting a communication from the Minister of Defence in regard to military investigations into the killings in Apurimac and Ayacucho. The communication stated that according to the Joint Command of the Armed Forces, no military actions were carried out in Apurimac on the dates cited; the armed forces were therefore in no way responsible for the alleged incidents and the investigation of the incident in Ayaeucho had therefore not been concluded. fli llippints 391. On 15 June 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of the Philippines concerning Solemn P. Jubilan, a lawyer in Kadapawan, North Cotabato province, who had allegedly been threatened with death by members of the security forces slnce 12 May 1990, when an article had appeared in the “Mindanao Cros& in which an unnamed military source had alleged that the Children of War Centre run by Solema P. Jubilan for orphaned children of war was a front for the fund—raising activities of the Communist Party of the Philippines (cP ). It has also been alleged that Jubilan had received numerous threats since 1965. 392. The Special Rapporteur, emphasizing the fact that the State had the primary responsibility of ensuring that the right to life of those under its jurisdiction was protected in every possible manner, appealed to the Government of the Philippines to take all necessary measures to protect the safety of Solerna P. Jubilan and requested any information on the measures taken by the Government to protect this person as well as on the investigation carried out by the authorities on the case. ; 393. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of the Philippines transmitting allegations that during the precedfng year; in the situation of internal armed conflict, aever l penon i ha d been 1 iUed in wwnary mamwr by members of the security forces and paramilitary groups under military / I
EICN.411991/36 page 96 command. The victims were said to be suspected of sympathy for the New People's Army (NPA) or to be members of trade unions, church organizations or community groups. Individual cases were reported as follows: (a) On 18 May 1990, Dulnuan P lo, aged 69, and his wife Tomasa P lo, aged 50, were killed and their 6—year—old daughter was shot in the chest by a combined group of 20 troopers of the 133rd Philippine Constabulary (PC) company and the Citizen's Armed Forces Geographical Units (CAFGU), who shot ‘ at their house in Don Fausto, Padaduan, Diffun , Quirino; : (b) On 4 June 1990, Jury Rabaca, aged I ?; Orgil Escutro, aged 21; and Teopanis Natividad, aged 28 were shot on their way home from Dumingag poblaci6n by armed men allegedly members of the defunct Integrated Civilian Home Defence Force (ICHDF); Jury Rabaca was killed; (c) On 26 August 1989, Ninda Magdadar was shot dead in Pagadian City, Zamboanga del Sur by a member of the first “Tabak” division of the Armed Forces of the Philippines (APP). She was reportedly mistaken for her niece, Maria Marne de los Santos Magdadaro, who was abducted on 23 September 1986 and released on 3 February 1987 after allegedly being raped and ill—treated; (d) On 14 October 1989, in Cebu City, Daoeian Aninon, his wife Sheila Aninon, who worked for the Visayas office of the Socio—Pastoral Institute ( S P I), and DondIl Dungog, aged 6, were killed, their house having been strafed by unidentified men. OEe family had received death threats after having refused to join the anti—communist vigilantes in 1988 and the CAFGU in September 1989; Ce) On 29 January 1990, Nesto Loberic, aged 25, and Diomedes Abawag, aged 26, both staff members of Saoear Assistance for Farmers Development Inc. (SAFDI), were abducted in Samar by men in civilian clothes, said to be members of the military intelligence group of region 8 (MIC a) of camp Lukban, Catbalogan, Samar. On ]. February 1990, Diomedes Abawag's head was found in the sea. On 4 February 1990, two headless bodies — allegedly of the victims — were found, one in Catbalogan, the other in Saiuar; (f) On 30 January 1990, Benjamin Mercado, a 42—year—old tricycle driver, was shot dead by two unidentified men in cLvilian clothes whom he was driving to Batanga. Prior to the incident, the victim was questioned at the military camp by military personnel of the 161st company, where he was threatened; (g) On 5 February 1990, Ruben Iledina was abducted by members of the Philippines Constabulary—Integrated National Police (PC—IN?) and CAFGU members from the bus No. 85 which had stopped at a military checkpoint In Batnan. His body, bearing gunshot wounds and signs of torture, was identified by employees of the funeral parlour in the bx n a the same day; (h) On 7 March 1990, Oscar Tagulao, aged 28, was shot dead by three unidentified armed men in Bataan, The victim was allegedly taken by the perpetrators for his brother, Rufo Tagulao, an active labour leader long under surveillance by the milItary. His other brother, Orlan Tagulac, had also been under surveillance by military offIcers and had been interrogated by members of the 24th infantry battallion, Philippine army (flPA), in the b.nnn&gx one month earlier;
I t — — — E/CN .4/199 1136 page 97 (!) On 16 April 1990, Artemio Viray, aged 42, chairman of a civilian organization of the residents of Ipag (MASIPAG) and suspected of being a member of the N rA, aa found dead in Mariveles bearing gunshot wounds in the head. The victim had gone on 28 March 1990 to the 26th infantry battalion (IB) where be was taken into custody for interrogation. His relatives were never allowed to see him; (3) On 11 April l99O , Romeo Danan, the President of the Organization of Agricultural Workers (AMA) and the Confederation for Freedom and Democracy (CONFREEDEN), was killed in Paanpaga by a member of the CAFGU; (k) On 29 April 1990, David Borja, aged 41, leader of the Southern Philippines Federation of Labour (SPLF) and regular member of the Kilusang Mayo fr i to (KNU) National Council, was killed by men in civilian clothes in Lanao del Norte. The military had reportedly raided the victim's house on several occasions but had failed to find him; (1) On iS January 1990, in Zamboanga del Sur, Cornelio Limbaga, aged 57, a member of the Basic Christian Community and a member of a farmers' organization, icilbean Magbubukik Pilipinas (KMP), was killed by two local vigilante groups, Panaginsa sa Democrasya (PD) and Preservation Democratic Institution of Philippines (PDIP). OEese groups 1 based in Buburay, Dimataling, were commonly referred to as the TADTAD (in) On 30 January 1990, in Sugbay Des, Pitogo, Zamboanga del Sur, Josefina Arnaez Abogada, aged 44, was killed by members of CAFGU; (n) In March 1989, in Jjg j Buena Vista, Santa Catalina, Negros Occidental, Nicosia Opian, two farmers and two young children were killed by a joint counter—insurgency force of the CAFGUs and the PC; (o) On 16 April 1989, in Pitogo, Zamboanga del Sur, Pastor Rude of the United Church of Christ of the Philippines was shot by a local CAFGU commander and died three days later. The commander was subsequently charged with homicide and detained at the 4th infantry battalion where he reportedly died in custody; (p) On 21 January 1990, in Sigacad Bayug, Zamboanga del Sur, Chrispulo Gioriano, a farmer, aged 55, was killed by the detachment commander of Sigacad and a CAFGU member; (q) On 3 April 1990, in Kayan, Tadian, Mountain province, Norman Akien, aged 18, and Antonio Alden Junior, aged 28, were killed by members of the 194th company of the Philippines Constabulary (PC). 394. It was further alleged that on 12 September and on 15 October 1989 chemical bombs were used by the AFP in the neighbourhood of non—military targets in flg y Bacong, Tuiuman, North Cotobato and near Upper Nagangit, Maca, Dacao d c i. Norte. Consequently, several small children reportedly suffered from dIarrhoea, fever acid suffocation and vomiting. Seven of them died the following days including Daisy Aplang, aged 7 months, Randy Malit, aged 7 months, Danny Boy Malit, aged 1 year and 8 months, and Nardo Tamba, aged 2 years. A number of old people reportedly also died as a result of the bombing.
1 __ . . . +.. E/CN. 1sf199l/36 page 98 395. Furthermore, two alleged cases of death in custody were described: (a) On 20 October 1989, in Quezon City, Jacinto Manois, a 33—year—old trade unionist, died as a result of torture in police custody; (b) On the night between 25 and 26 October 1989 , in Bontoc, Mountain province, Jerry Ayban was shot dead while asleep in his cell. in the custody of the Philippine Constabulary—Integrated National Police (PC—INP). Immediately after the shooting, one of the guards on duty disappeared. 396. On 18 September 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of the Philippines concerning several religious workers in Negros Occidental, and in particular Sister Aquila Sy , Father Cerson Balitor, Father Eamon Gil and Father Des Quinn who had been subjected to harassment and death threats. According to the information, hundreds of leaflets signed in the name of the AKTK (Alliance Against Exploiters of the People)) reportedly a paramilitary group linked to the local military command, had been distributed to houses in the area of Payso, Negros Occidental, on 8 August 1990, inciting acts of violence against the aforementioned and other religious workers. The harassment of Sister Aquila Sy, the current regional co—ordinator of the rural missionaries in the Philippines and vice—chairperson of the promotion of church peoples' rights, District V southern Negros Occidental, was said to be connected with her efforts in July 1990 to locate three members of the Federation of Internal Refugees in Negros, accused by the military authorities of being couriers for the New People's Army, who had disappeared shortly after their arrest, on 6 July 1990, by CAFGU members and military personnel. 397. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur, emphasizing that the State had the primary responsibility of ensuring that the right td life of those under its jurisdiction was protected in every possible manner, appealed to the Government of the Philippines to take all necessary measures to protect the safety of the above—mentioned persons and requested information on the measures taken by the Government to protect the persona concerned as well as on the investigation carried out by the authorities on the case. 398. On 28 November 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of the Philippines, transmitting allegations that in the context of the internal armed conflict, unarmed civilians were killed in a summary manner by members of security forces or paramilitary groups or, in some instances, by unidentified men presumed to be acting with official connivance. Among the victims were members of church organizations, and more recently, members of workers' unions, community activists and peasant groups presumably suspected of supporting armed opposition groups. Alleged cases were described as follows: -. (a) Father Dionisio Malalay, aged 32, was shot dead on 6 April 1989 by a member of the Philippines Constabulary (PC) in Tabina, south of Pagadian City, Zamboanga del Sur. Me had previously been warned by the military about his attempts to secure indemnifScation for victIms of human rights vtolations. Ruf lno Rivera, town counc lllor of tabina was also killed i t t the same incident by the cousin of the PC member who shot and killed Father Dicnisio flalalay;
.:. E/CN.4/199l/36 page99 (b) Manuel Villaseaor, head of the Urban Poor Association Katipunan Ng Sainahang Makabayan (KASANA), disappeared on 28 May 1989, in Quezon City as he left a church with two companions. On 29 May 1990, his bullet—riddled body was found behind a church in Intraniuroa, Manila. OEe bodies of his two companions were found in separate locations in Manila. lie was said to have received an anonymous letter in May 1989 accusing him of harbouring a known urban guerrilla; Cc) Tomas Baiboa, aged 44, a teacher, was shot dead on 4 January 1990 by an investigator of the 321st PC detachment with a .45 calibre pistol. lie was reportedly detained earlier that day and taken to the 321st PC headquarters by PC— IMP and CAFGU members. The individual detained with Baiboa reportedly heard gunshots from his cell at approximately 2.00 p.m. that day; Cd) Felipe “Wilson” Leonidas, aged 27, member of the Congress of the United Urban Poor (KPNL), died on 1 March 1990, while in custody of the ( military group (MIC) in camp Bago Bantay in Pag—Asa, Quezon City. The had been abducted at gunpoint from a Manila restaurant on 22 February 1990 by unidentified individua1 in civitian clothing after attending a peace rally to commemorate the EDSA revolution anniversary. On 1 March 1990 his sisters were informed by the commander of camp Bago Bantay that he had committed suicide. However, the outcome of any official investigation into the suicide was not known to have been made public; ‘ Ce) Hernando Pelaro and Pablito Labrador, both farmworkers belonging to the NFSW—FGT, hacienda Alibasao local chapter of the Faroeworkers' Union, were shot dead at close range by CAFGU members who invaded a farmworker's home where the two were among 15 guests. The incident took place on 26 January 1990, in Alibasao, Bargy , Murcia, Negros Occidental; (f) Wilfredo Cumawas, member of the hacienda Quiroben local chapter of the NFS t—FGT Farmw'orkers' Union, was shot dead on 28 February 1990 at approximately 1.30 p.m. as he tried to flee alleged members of the military and CAFGU who raided hacienda Quiroben, Murcia, Negros Occidental, in search of opposition sympathizers; (g) Emelyn Lipon, aged 9, elementary student, was killed and four other members of her family wounded when members of CAFOU strafed their house on 28 June 1990, in Purok 5, baran gay Lumbo, Valencia, Oukidnon. According to CAFGU, two farmer friends at the Lipon's home were members of the New Peoples' Army (NPA). On 13 July 1990, an arrest warrant was issued by the Valencia municipal trial court judge for the three identified perpetrators who were reportedly still at large; (h) Sonny Bergorio, a part—time organizer of the NFSW—FGT Farmworkers' Union, was arrested on 29 June 1990 by soldiers of the 606th brigade of the Bacong detachment of zang i Ma—ac Bago City when they raided hacienda Manghuxnay, barangay Mailum, Negros Occidental. He was shot dead at the Kuuisap detachment, allegedly attempting to escape; Ci) During the period between January and Nay 1990, at least 14 persons were reportedly killed in a series of military operations carried out by the 32nd infantry battalion in the gny of Snad and Dilud, town of Dumingag, Zamboanga del Stir. The following unarmed :!viliane were named as among the victims: on 16, 23 and 25 January 1990: kadong Gwnawak, aged 47;
. . . . . .-- . . E/CN.4/ 1991f36 page 100 Guntay Andera, aged 14; Urning Gumangay, aged 27; on 18 and 20 March 1990: Eson Otes, aged 19; Do Condes, aged 18; Gaulle Tamudong, aged 53; Do Andaloy, aged 16; from 2 to 9 April 1990: Endo Andera, aged 56; Inday Andera, aged 53; Tonio Men, aged 58; t4aiben Aden, aged 27; on 24 April 1990: Anecito Guinerod, aged 35; Eliseon Condes, aged 35. 399. In regard to the case of Alfonso Surigao Jr., a human rights lawyer shot dead in Cebu City in June 1988, as noted by the Special Rapporteur in his report to the forty—fifth session of the Commission on Human Rights (see document E/CN.4/l989/25, para. 226 (c)), it was reported that although the Philippines Department of Justice had filed criminal charges in December 1989 against a military intelligence officer alleged to have been the person who ordered the Surigao assassination, that officer had not been arrested and currently holds the post of commanding officer of a regional security unit. The Justice Department had also ordered the Cebu prosecutor's office to file murder charges against the officer in October 1989, but reports indicated this was never done. The hired killer, however, was convicted of murder in March 1989 and sentenced to life imprisonment. 400. On 29 January 1990, a reply was received from the Government of the Philippines to the Special Rapporteur t s letter of 24 July 1989 (see E/CN.4/1990/22, paras. 336 to 338), transmitting reports from the Philippines Commission on Human Rights on some of the cases as follows. 401. Visrninda Gran, a pastor of the United Church of Christ, together with her husband Lovino, was killed on l May 1989 at their residence in loeraxtRay del Pilar, Baliangao, Misamis Occidental, by unidentified armed men. Initial investigation has revealed that at about 8.00 p.m. on 1 May 1989, while inside their residence, the Gran couple were shot by five masked men clad in fatigue uniforms using long and short firearms of various calibre. They were hit in various parts of their body and died instantly. After shooting the Grans, the men robbed the house of various items and cash of an undetermined amount. Thereafter, the killers escaped towards Sitio Baga, ]z ng Lumipac, Baliangao. While none of the killers was apprehended, the fact that they were wearing combat fatigues has given rise to suspicions that the xrilitary/CAFGU might have been involved. It was pointed out, however, that anyone can easily get fatigue uniforms which are also used by other armed and rebel groups. 402. Further investigation was being undertaken by different agencies of the Government, including the Armed Forces of the Philippines (AFP). 403. Nine persons, Valeriano Bongcayao, Valeriano Bongcayao, Jr., Marcelino ongcayao, Arnold Gavino, Ronaldo de is Cruz, Gabriel. Pragas, Ronaldo Juvilla, Jesus de Ia Crut, and Herminia de l .a Cruz, were said to be the victims of a massacre committed on 28 April 1989, in har n.ggX San Jos4, Paombong, Bulacan, by members of the 42nd marine company and a group of armed men believed to be members of N rA. 404. According to the report of the invest Igation undertaken by the Department of Justice, the victims were k&lled as an inevitable consequence of the encounter between the elements of 42nd marine company and an armed group be1 eved to be NPA rebels. 405 A heartng on the case was under way in the Commission on Human Eights.
E/CN.4/1991./36 page 101 406. Father Dionisio Malalay, assistant parish priest of Dimataling—Tabina, Zamboanga del Sur, and RuE mo Rivera, a local church leader and town councillor of tabina, were shot to death on 6 April 1989 in the house of Rufino Rivera at Purok IV, Hilltop p p klacj j , Tabina, Zamboanga del Sur. Their assailants were identified as a member of the Philippines Constabulary (PC) and his cousin, Nelson Colipano. 407. A complaint has been filed before the municipal circuit trial court of Dimataling, Tabina and Pitogo against the suspects, and arrest warrants were issued against them on 7 April 1989. 408. Preliminary reports show that between 5.00 and 6 ,30 p.m. on 2.1 March 1989, at the Jj jJj of Catarinan, northern Samar, attorney Oscar Tonog, together with his wife, were hurrying home due to the rain when an unidentified man suddenly blocked their path, pulled out a handgun and shot attorney Tonog three times at point—blank range. He was immediatedly rushed to Samar General Hospital where he died on the following day. The investigation of the case was still continuing. 409. On 2 March 1989, Romulo de hi Cruz a suspected N1'A member, was shot dead by a man identified as a CAFGU member, as he slept in a house of a relative in b. rangn Guindapunari, Dararn, Samar. The case was still under investigation. 410. Pedro ?agao, Encarnaci6n Pagao, Eduardo Pagac and Rosie Pagao were killed by elements of the 62nd inEantry batallion under the command of a colonel. According to the report, on 18 February 1989 the mother of one of the victims heard several shots coming from the direction of Sitio Bangon, Carayoean, Caibsyog, Samar, about half a kilometre away. The following day, she was informed by her daughter's neighbour that her daughter's entire family had been massacred. 411. The case was still under investigation and an exhumation of the bodies of the victims wa n conducted on 25 August 1989 by a team of forensic experts. 412. Meliton Roxas, chairman of the Union of Filipro Employees (Ufl) chapter in Cabuyao, an affiliate of the KtIU, was shot dead on 20 January 1989 by an unidentified gunman while he was having his lunch with his wife outside the Nest1 plant in Cabuyao, Laguna. 413. The Commieeion on Hwnnn Rights wn in the procus of evaluating the report from the Philippines Constabulary of Cabuyao. 414. An investigation by the Commission revealed that on 20 November 1988, at about 10.00 p.m., the residents of fluritela, Agusan del Sur, were awakened by explosions caused by a bomb that hit the b&zmig.ay, particularly the Cogollodo house, resulting in the death of all six members of the family. According to the witnesses, the bombs had come from San Luis, Agusan del Sur, where detachments of the 2nd infantry battalion were located. 415. The Commission was still gathering more evidence so that a case could be filed against the commanding officer oE the batallion if warranted. 416. Pedro Ga b was said to have been killed on 10 September 1988 by members of Alsa Nasa In z ng Inabod, Matuguinno, Samar. The case was referred to the district attorney's office In Samar.
E/CN.4/199 1/36 page 102 41?. On 30 August 1990, a reply was received from the Philippine Commission on Human Rights (cflit) concerning the case of Attorney Solema P. Jubilan referred to in the Special Rapporteur's cable of 15 June 1990. 418. OEe letter stated that this was not the first time that Na. Jubilan had reported alleged threats on her life; in 1958 and 1989 she allegedly received similar death threats, but there was no actual attempt on her life. 419. The letter further stated thee the Commission would take, within means available to it, such measures as would contribute to the safety and well—being of Ms. Jubilan. 420. OEe report on the case from the regional field officer based in Contabato City was attached to the Commission's letter. It referred to the press conference arranged by Ms. Jubilan at which the alleged death threats were described, noted the difficulties in investigating cases of death threats and expressed doubt that any surveillance for her safety was practicable due to the lack of technical and other means. 421. On 19 october 1990% a reply was received from the Government of the Philippines, transmitting information from the Philippine Commission on , Human Rights (Cnn) on a number of cases communicated to the Government on 2.6 July 1990 as follows: (a) Dulnuam and Tomasa Pio: In view of conflicting accounts of the incident, the Commission on Human Rights regional office in Tugucgarao was still gathering evidence; I I) Joery Rabaca, Orgil Escurro and Teopanis Natividad: Criminal charges for murder and attempted murder were filed against three individuals . in the regional trial court branch 23 of Zamboanga City; (c) Minda Hag Dadard: No investigation was conducted by the Pagadian City police department nor was the case filed in court due to lack of evidence and witnesses. The case remains under investigation by the Commission on F Human Rights; (d) flainiano Aninon, Marciana Aninon, and Dondil Aninon: To date the identities of the perpetrators have not been established despite efforts to this end, and the case continued under investigation; (e) Nestor Loberio and Diomedes Abawag: A member of the Integrated National Police (INP) in Catbalogan, Swuar, was named as a suspect in the case, and the investigation was continuing; (f) Benjam In ?lercado: The case remains under investigation by the Commission on Human Rights. According to the CHR investigation, Mr. Mercado had been questioned by the PC at camp Tolentino in Balanga, Bataan, prior to being killed; (g) Ruben Medina: According to the official police report, Mr. ?ledina was apprehended by members of the IN ? at ran& x Kaparangan, Orani, Bataan. While being taken to headquarters at camp Tolentino, Balanga, Bataan, he allegedly grabbed the firearm of a police escort and was shot dead as he I
. . : E/CN.411991/36 page 103 attempted to escape. It was stated that no witness to the alleged attempted - . escape had come forward. According to the Commission on Human Rights, the H official report of the Samal police remained uncontroverted; U t) Comelio (Oscar) Tagulao: The Commission on Human Rights is : : continuing its investigation of the case; (i) Romco Danan: .4 suspect was detained by the Lubao police at the Lubao municipal jail. The case was forwarded to the judge advocate general's office, northern Luzon command, camp Aquino, Tarlac; ! :: (j) David Borja: The case remains under investigation , Witnesses were reportedly afraid to provide written statements for fear of reprisal despite offered protection and relocation assistance; ( Ic) Cornelio Limbaga: Proceedings were initiated before the municipal circuit trial court of Dimataling—tahina—Pitogo, Zamboanga del Sur. An arrest warrant was issued against a TADIAD vigilante member but remains unserved; (1) Josefina Abogada: The case remains under investigation by the Commission on Human Rights; (ru) Pastor Zenaido Ruelo: The Commission on Human Rights closed the case after the prime suspect, a CAFGU commander of Pitogo, Zamboanga del But, was himself killed following initiation of proceedings against him before the municipal circuit trial court of Pitogo; (n) Crispulo Gloriano: Charges were filed against two CAFGU officers before the municipal circuit trial court of Buug—Bayog, Zamboanga del Sur; (o) Norman Akien and Antonio Akien, Jr: The case remains nder investigation by the Commission on Human Rights; (p) Artemio Viray: The case remains under investigation by the Commission on Human Rights; (q) In regard to the alleged use of chemical bombs on 12 September and 15 October 1989 by the Armed Forces of the Philippines (APP) against non—military targets, the Commission on Human Rights closed the case after a visual inspection of the army's armoury failed to detect bombs or shells containing toxic chemicals. 422. Information regarding two alleged cases of death in custody was received as follows; (a) Jacinto Manadis: Charges have been filed against two police officers of the AIICAR division of Quezon City before the judge advocate general's office in camp Crame, Quezon City. According to the Coiranission on Htiman Rights investigation, he was killed in a shootout when he grabbed and fired a police officer's gun; I I) Jerry Ayban: Proceedings were under way before the regional trial court of Bontoc, Nountain province, against a CAFCU member who, at the time of the killing, was a corporal of the guard of the provincial forces.
— 7 S : . . EICN.41199 1136 . , . page 104 “ Romania . 423. On 15 June 1990, a cable was cent to the Government of Romania concerning reports received according to which at least four persona had been killed during clashes which occurred from 13 June 1990 onwards in Bucharest between demonstrators and security forces. ‘It was also reported that a very large number of miners, who hadassociated themselves with the security forces, had violently attacked demonstrators. .‘ . : , , , , 424. In this connection, the Special Rapport ur appealed to the Government of Romania to take all necessary measures to prevent the further occurrence of such deaths and to protect the safety of thepersons concerned and also requested information on the above—mentioned events and, in particular, on : , the investicction carried out by the competent authorities in this regard. 425. On 22 June 1990, the Special Rapporteur received a copy of a letter dated 18 June 1990 addressed to the Secretary—General from the Prime Minister of Romania, as well as a copy of a press release issued by the Government of ; Romania on 16 June 1990 concerning the events in Bucharest of 13 and 14 June 1990. 426. According to the above—mentioned letter, the events took place in Bucharest during 13 and 14 June, when, in order to prevent the Parliament and the country's President from beginning their work — as a result of the free elections of 20 May — extremist mobs besieged and devastated a series of State institutions. OEe violent and irresponsible acts ended with five people dead and over 100 wounded, and available information clearly showed the existence of a plan to overthrow the Government by force. 427. It was further stated that under such dramatic circumstances, when the forces of order risked being overwhelmed, the President—Elect and the Government appealed to the population to help the police and the army to prevent such acts of violence and vandalism, while giving instructions to avoid any bloodshed. OEe Government regretted that, during the actions taken to restore order, in a situation that remained confused, some citizens were molested and the headquarters of some political parties were attacked. According to the Letter, at its meeting of 16 June, the Romanian Government established measures to put an end to any illegal acts, to restore the lawful order And to secure freedom of expression, political activity and the press. 428. With regard to all criminal acts that were perpetrated, the letter stated that sufficient evidence was available for instituting court proceedings against those responsible. 429. The press release by the Government on 16 June 1990 referred to the same events and gave the Government's account of the events. 430. On 9 July 1990, a letter was received from the Government of Romania in reply to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 15 June 1990, transmitting a copy of a letter dated 25 June 1990 to the Special Rapporteur on the sltuat on of human rights In Romania from the Minister for Foreign Affairs. In addition to the Government's account of the events of 13 and 14 June 1990, the letter stated that on 13 June 1990, after all attempts had been exhausted by the
- E/CN.41 199 1/35 page 105 •. :: : •:. • 1 . ! . .. .• . •. :... . Government to establishadlalogue with demonstrators, the security forces and eventually the armed forces were obliged to intervene to put an end to the situation of disorder and violence. The operation was seated to have been carried out without any incident. According to the letter, in the afternoon of 13 June persons armed with knives and ?lolotov cocktails attacked the security forces and committed acts of vandalism, and in the evening several public buildings were attacked and set on fire, trapping people inside. The Romania Television building was also attacked and ransacked. It was stated that, in a situation where security forces were in danger of being overwhelmed, the President—elect and the Government appealed to the population to support the police and the army; in response, groups of citizens, in particular workers from Bucharest and other departments (Prahovain 3uzen, Constants) as well as miners from the Valley of Jiu responded to the appeal. 431. It was further stated that on 18 June 1990, after the events, the authorities recorded six deaths: one worker was stabbed by extremists, another died of coronary thrombosis, another died as a result of beatings during the attack on the television station, and the three others were shot dead. The letter stated that all the deaths were attributable to the mob violence of 13 June 1990. It was further stated that on 14 and 15 June 1990, in the course of restoring public order and due to the confusion prevailing at the time, some excesses did occur including molesting of citizens and attacks on headquarters of political parties. The latter further stated that on 18 June 1990, the Louse of Representatives adopted a resolution recognizing that the intervention by the security forces was necessary and legitimate. A joint parliamentary commission was said to have been set up in order to inquire into events occurring between 13 and 15 June and to determine those responsible. 432. On 28 November 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Senegal transmitting allegations that during the year 1990, non—armed civilians were killed in a summary manner and that others were killed after beins tortured by security forces or the military. Most of the killings allegedly took place in the southern Senegalese region of Casamance where civilians were suspected of belonging to the Movement of Democratic forces of Casamance (Mouvement des forces d&mocratiques de la Casamance (NFDC)) or of providing food or munitions to that opposition political group. The following cases were described: (a) Kaoussou Tamba, Aliou Tamba, tialick Tamba, Dembo Taxnba, and Souleymane Goudiaby, peasants found dead on 21 September 1990 in Kanaw village, Casamance, after having been taken away in an army vehicle by several dozen soldiers who had entered the village with a list of names of individuals suspected of providing arms to the MFDC; (b) Ycunonsa Djiba, aged Z7, from Kaguitte, Nyassia sub—district, deoartment of Zinguincher; and Spa Dakar, from Yotcu vfllage, department of Oussoye. In the beginning of October 1990, the two villagers died after having been detained and severely beaten at the military base in Kaguitte v11lage They had both been arrested by security forces for allegedly ransacking a food store to provide foodstuffs to the MFDC;
r E/CN.4fl99 1/36 page 106 H Cc) During the first week of October 1990, in the context of operations against the MFDC, a patrol of security forces shot dead five unarmed civilians in Kaguitte village who allegedly attempted to escape. 433. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Senegal. Somali 434. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Somalia transmitting allegations that during the previous year, in a situation of internal armed conflict between Government forces and armed opposition groups in several parts of the country, a number of unarmed civilians were killed by Government forces in a summary manner. 435. The following incidents were described: (a) In March 1989, in Erigavo, 200 unarmed civilians were killed by Government troops after the Somali National Movement (sNn) occupied the town on 16 March 1989 and subsequently withdrew; (b) On 20 September 1989, in Dobleh, lower Juba region, where the Somali Patriotic Movement (8PM) was fighting Government forces, some 60 civilians, including women and children, were killed by Government soldiers. On about 24 September 1989, 18 persons out of some 60 Somali refugees who had fled to Kenya and were forced to return to Somalia, reportedly were summarily executed by Somali soldiers; Cc) On about 24 November 1989, in the villages of Wargalo, Do—ol, Dowgab and Hilmo, near Galkayo, Mudug region, some 120 persons, including women and children, were executed in a summary manner by Government troops, in reprisal for a mutiny of soldiers belonging to the local Hawiye clan, or because they were suspected of having links with the rebel group called the United Somali Congress (USC). OEose executed allegedly included the following: Hash! Awale Abdi “Hogolof”, busInessman and Hawlye clan elder; Abdullahi Abdul—Khaire “Hogolof”, businessman, relative of the above; Mirreh Aden Abdi; Abdi Horreh Botan; Haji Shirwa A u Bulale, Jlawiye clan elder; Has an Jumaale Dalah, Islamic teacher; Haji “Dogale”, brother of the above; Ahmed Elmi Farada; Abdi Bans Hassan; and Haji “Sherwanage”. 436. In addition, it was reported that Mohamoud Mohamed Mohamoud, an 18—year—old student from Mogadishu, was brought to Digfer hospital on 11 February 1990 in a coma and died on the following day. He was allegedly arrested on 9 or 10 February 1990 and interrogated under torture by the security forces in connection with the flight of his brother from the country. 437. Furthermore, several persons were reportedly sentenced to death by the National Security Courts for embezzlement of public funds or illegal foreign currency transactions. It was alleged that the defendants did not receive fair trials in the National Security Court nor were they allowed to appeal to a higher tribunal against their conviction and sentences. Cases were described as follows: (a) On 30 November 1989, in Mogadishu, six persons, including Abdi Mudey Abdi, were sentenced to death by the National SecurIty Court;
EICN .6 / 1991/36 page 107 (b) The following were also sentenced to death by the National Security Court and are said to be awaiting execution: Shamso Mohamed AlL in Baidowa, an accounts clerk, sentenced to death in December 1988; Mba Mohamed, in Kismayu, an accounts clerk, sentenced to death in 1981 or 1988; Hassan Abdikarim Haji Ibrahim, in Mogadishu, a former government accountant, .‘ sentenced to death in February 1989. 438. On 28 November 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Somalia transmitting allegations that in the context of an internal armed conflict intensified by recent offensives of the Somali National Movement (5MM) in the northern regions, unarmed civilians were killed in a summary manner by governmental forces particularly in conflict areas. Reports indicated that apart from indiscriminate attacks, many of the killings were carried out in retaliation for sNri activities or against civilians for suspected sympathy for the 8 M M. The victims reportedly belonged primarily to the Isaak clan. Cases were described as follows: (a) On 6 July 1990, approximately 60 unarmed civilians were shot dead by military police of the presidential guard (“red berets”) at the main stadium in Mogadishu during a football match. The incident started when the crowd shouted against a pre—match presidential speech; after the first half of the match a member of the military police shot into the crowd, provoking disturbances in the stadium. The military opened indiscriminate fire on the crowd of 30,000, killing a number of persons. Others died because the military refused to let the wounded receive treatment; (b) On 16 August 1990, the Hangash branch of the military police arrested 17 persons in a restaurant in the northern part of Berbera and executed them the same evening in alleged retaliation for recent 5 M M activities. All 17 were members of the Issak clan, dominant in the town and suspected by the military of their sympathy for the 8 M M. The executions took place without any form of trial. Those executed were the following: Aden Mohamed Abokor; Abdullah3. Abdi A u; Aden Elmi AlL; Ahmed Ismail Ali; Abdi Mohmned Elmi; AlL Mohamod lane; Abmed Abdi K rahe; Abdi Mohamed Robich; Men Warsame AlL, former police officer; AlL Mohamed Ahmed; Abdullahi Ibrahim Ali; Abdullahi. Ismail Yusuf; Abdi Eagar Dahir; Hussein Elmi Farah; Moogeh Osman Jibril; Mohanted Abdi Mohamoud, a tJNMCR driver; Moharned Abmed Sa lah; (c) On 16 June 1990, Giuseppe Salvo, an Italian medical scientist, disappeared from his hotel in Nogadishu. Military or security authorities reportedly claimed that he committed suicide while in custody after having been arrested by the authorities in a military zone. Reports indicate he died of head wounds received while in custody; Cd) In regard to the case of 46 unarmed civilians belonging to the Isaak clan killed by the presidential rnil tary police (“red berets”) on a beach in JezLra, 30 k&lometres south—west of Mogadishu, on 16/17 July 1989 (see E/CM.4/1990/22, para. 356), it was reported that despite a Government inquiry after the killings, no action was taken to bring those responsible for the killings to justLce. 439 At the tfme of preparation of the present recofl, no reply had been received from the Government of Somalia.
E/CN.4/l99 1/J6 page 108 s Sh_Afri 41t0. On 3 April 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of South Africa regarding the information received that on 26 March 1990 in the township of Sebokeng, at least nine persons had allegedly been killed when police had opened fire on demonstrators. The demonstration, which reportedly had been declared illegal under the state of emergency, was said to have been organized to protest against high rents and racially segregated housing. 441. In view of the reported incidents of violence in various parts of South Africa in the preceding weeks, the Special Rapporteur, feeling seriously concerned for the life of all those who might be affected by the tense situation, appealed to the Government to take all necessary measures to ensure that the right to life of every citizen was protected, and requested information on the reported deaths in Sebokeng and on the measures taken by the Government in this connection. 442. On 11 April 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent another cable to the Government of South Africa in which he expressed his serious concern with violent internecine black conflict in Natal, most recently during the period between the end of March and the beginning of April 1990 in Elandskcp and Imbali where some 80 persons had reportedly been killed. 443. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to do its utmost to ensure that the right to life of the individuals concerned was protected in the above—mentioned situation of violent confrontation, and requested information in this regard, in particular on the measures taken by the Government to prevent further loss of lives. 444. On 26 July 1990, a letter was uent to the Government of South Africa transmitting allegations that in the previous year several persons had been killed by members of the police when shots were fired indiscriminately at a crowd of demonstrators or protesters. The following cases were described: (a) On 29 September 1989 I I Richmond, Natal, a 16—year—old schoolgirl was shot dead when police opened fire on 800 students marching to a police station to demand the release of detained pupils; (b) On 18 November 1989, in Germiston, a railway worker on strike was shot by police and died in the hospital. This shooting occurred while the police were attempting to disperse a meeting inside the office of the Congress of the South African Trade Unions; Cc) It was reported on 25 January 1990 that two Khutsong residents were shot dead when police opened fire with shotguns as a crowd of protesters was dispersing after handing a letter to the police listing grievances which included alleged police brutality; Cd) It was reported that on 8 February 1990 in Garankuwa a crowd of thousands marching in protest against the “homeland” system was fired on by Bophuthatawana security forces, using tear—gas and rubber bullets. At least one person died later in the hospital;
. .. -—— . . . _____ . . . - , . . . . . ..: 1 E/CN.4/199 1/36 page 109 (e) It was reported that on 9 February 1990 a youth was shot dead in Lamontville when police opened fire on a crowd of youths passing by the police office; (f) It was reported that on 12 February 1990 in Tokoza, during a rally held to protest against high rents, police opened fire, killing three persons. Police reportedly claimed to have acted against stone—throwers and persons burning cars, but the injured victims denied these claims; (g) It was reported that on 13 February 1990, in Bandy East, two youths had been shot dead. Residents reportedly stated that they had been celebrating the release of Nelson Mandela, but the police claimed that they had attacked a policeman's house; (h) It was reported that on 13 February 1990 in Mdentsane, Ciskei, 10 persons were shot dead when police opened fire on celebrating crowds. It was also reported that police and marchers clashed in ifiammansdraal, Bophuthatawana, during a celebration of the release of Nelson Mandela, and that a 16—year—old was killed; (i) It was reported that on 25 February 1990, police shot and killed I3ongJ. Nyokong, aged 17, a student at Tlokwe secondary school, Potchefstroom, as he hid under a teacher's bed. The incident followed a day of violence in the township and an abortive march by teachers on the Department of Education and Training offices; (3) It was reported that on 27 February 1990, Bophuthatswana police opened fire on a crowd of 8,000 residents of OElabane, near Rustenburg, killing two. The demonstration had been calling for the reincorporation of Bophuthatswana into South Africa; (k) It was reported that on 27 February 1990 in Hankutama, Venda, two persons were killed in a stampede when tear—gas was used to disperse a crowd at a rally to celebrate the release of Nelson Mandela; (1) It was reported that on 26 March 1990 in Sebokeng, at least 11 persons were killed by police who opened fire on protesters demonstrating against high house—rental rates. On 20 April 1990, President de Klerk reportedly ordered an inquiry into the deaths at Sebokeng; (us) It was reported that on 20 April 1990 in the Rammulotsi black township, near Viljoenskroon in the Orange Free State, four boys between 13 and 16 yeats of age were killed when the police opened fire during a peaceful anti—apartheid demonstration; ; Cu) On 15 Nay 1990 in the Orange Free State town of Maokeng, two youths, Seiso Mangwerijane, aged 9, and Isahiah Tau, aged 15, were killed. Eyewitnesses claimed that police in disguise hiding under a tarpaulin in a rented truck had driven into town, and that when the truck stopped several ‘ armed polfcemen allegedly sprang out and opened fire; (o) On 20 May 1990 in Thabong, a black township adjoining Welkom, four persons were killed when the police fired on a crowd leaving a meeting; three of the wounded died the following day.
E / CN • 4/1991/36 page 110 445. It was also alleged that in the past year assassinations of political or anti—apartheid activists have occurred. In some cases in which the perpetrators were reportedly “unknown”, it was alleged that little progress in official investigations was made and that most of the perpetrators remained unpunished. The following alleged incidents are sununarized by way of example: (a) In February 1989, Sawutini Booi, President of the Adelaide Youth Congress, died following a petrol bomb attack on his home by unknown assailants; (b) It was reported that on 14 April 1989, Chris Thandazani Ntuli, aged 30, an organizer for the Natal Youth Congress, was stabbed to death by unknown assailants on his way home from a local police station where his restriction order required him to report twice daily; Cc) It was reported on 9 May 1990 that Colonel Floris Mostent, who was leading the investigation into the assassination of David Webster on 1 May 1989, claimed to have information that two employees of the Civil Co—operation Bureau (COB) had been involved in the murder of Dr. Webster. A month after the assassination of Dr. Webster, other Five Freedom Forum representatives had also been subject to attack. Mr. Jan Mullen, one of the representatives, died when his house burned down and, although the inquest ruled that it was accidental death, other FFF membero still questioned those findings. On 25 May 1990, Mr. Larnbors Marinaki was reportedly shot twice while in bed; Cd) In March 1990 in Welkom, Mnikelo Ndanise, a black miner, was beaten to death by a white vigilante group known as “Blanke Veiligheid” (White Security) which had been formed in early March 1990 to halt a protest march by black teachers. 446. As in previous years, several deaths in detention were reported. OEe following cases were reported to have occurred in the past year: (a) In November 1989, in Tembisa, Albert Simelane, aged 30, died shortly after being detained by police. Allegations of police violence and torture have been made in regard to his death; I I ) On 16 January 1990 near Khutsong, west of Johannesburg, Nixon Phiri, aged 16, died in police custody as a result of torture. A post—mortem revealed that he had died of a brain haemorrhage caused by external injuries and shock; , (C) On 29 January 1990, in Mutubatube, Michael Zunga, aged 20, died of strangulation having purportedly hung himself by his shoelaces while in a police station. Witnesses said in sworn statements that Zunga was beaten by police and then thrown unconscious and barefoot into the police van after a dispute about school fees; Cd) It was reported that in February 1990, in East Rand, Simon tshebeiale, aged 22, died after having been held as a robbery suspect at GrootvleL police station. According to a po1 ce representative, Tshebela le had resisted arrest and “force had to be used by the police, who had found stolen property in his possession”;
E/CN.4/ 199 1/3E page in Ce) Other deaths in police custody include Sizwe Sithole , aged 20, and Mandla Manana, aged 27, both of whom were found hanged in their cells at John Vorster Square police station in Johannesburg. A commission of inquiry was opened on 30 January 1990 and its report was to be submitted to President tie Klerk in March 1990; (f) In February 1989, the bodies of Derrick tiashobane, Thabo Mohale and Porta Shabangu, members of the restricted South African National Student Congress, were found in Swaziland. 447. It was also alleged that killings occurred in the province of Natal during clashes between members and supporters of the African National Congress (ANC), United Democratic Front and members of the Inkatha movement. The violence in Natal allegedly claimed 80 lives in the week starting 27 March 1990, making a total of 3,000 deaths since 1985. The following alleged incidents are summarized by way of example: (a) In December 1989, in the Elanskop area, seven known Afr O sympathizer : / were murdered in the course of one week; (b) It was reported that on 4 April 1990, the bodies of Celestine Mucwabe, aged 36, and her sister Emmerentia, aged 32, were found. I was alleged that they had been killed because they had been standing next to people who failed to bow to the command of the “warlord” Ntombela, as they owed their allegiance to the African National Congress (AfrO); Cc) On 28 March 1990 dozens of people were killed in Mr. Ntombela's are of control. 448. It was further alleged that in the past year extrajudicial executions by “death squads”, also known as “askaris”, occurred. These death squads were allegedly linked to the security forces. A commission to study alleged killing by the death squads known as the Harms Commission, started on 5 March 1990 and inquiry into alleged “hit aquada” in Prgtori , OEn Commia3ion'a m*ndato wan to “inquire into and to report on the alleged occurrence of murders and other unlawful acts of violence committed in the Republic of South Africa in order to achieve, bring about or further any constitutional or political aim ...“. 449. It was reported on 22 March 1990, that a brigadier of the South African police had affirmed an affidavit stating that one of the civil co—operation bureau (COB) cells had been responsible for the assassination of David Webst and Anton Lubowski. 450. It was reported on 21 February 1990, that a chain of command involving : several generals and leading to the office of General Malan ran the CCB, whi was funded out of the South African Defence Force (SADF) budget but manned mainly by former policemen and decommissioned army intelligence officers. 451, It was reported on 26 April 1990 that Capt. Dirk Coettee had informed t Harms Commission on 25 Apr!l 1990, during its session in London, that• e had been instructed by Brigadier Jan van der Iloven, regional security commander, to “get rid” of Mr. Mxenge and make the killing look like a robbery. . . . .
E/CN.4/199 1/36 page 112 452. On 27 Ap rIl 1990, during the second day of testifying before the harms Corrinission, Mr. Coettee described how he and his unit of “askaris” (former ANC members who had been recruited for operations against their former colleagues) had carried out kidnappings and murders in South Africa and neighbouring countries. 453. It was further reported that Mr. Coettee informed the Commission how, after many failed attempts to add ppison (obtained from a senior officer at the police forensic laboratories) to the drinks of Mr. Vusi, a suspected AI C infiltrator who had refused to co—operate, and Mr. Peter, who had defected while studying in Bulgaria, the two men were rendered unconscious by “knock—out drops” and then had been taken hundreds of miles away to Tranaveal, shot in the head and burned. He claimed that similar treatment had been used against another “askari”, lasaac “Ace” Moeina, “because he was always — his heart wasn't in his job”. ..34. On 29 August 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of South Africa following information received from witnesses in the course of the hearings held in London together with the United Nations Ad hoc Working Group of Experts on southern Africa, concerning certain elements of the police and other law enforcement officials who had been assisting, encouraging, conniving, supporting and arming the members of the Inkhat movement, who httd reportedly deliberately provoked violence. According to the testimonies, the law enforcement personnel, in restoring order, had not acted impartially and in many cases they had used more force than was warranted under the United Nations code of conduct for law enforcement officials. If the allegations were true, then substantial blame for violence which had led to great lose of life lay with the police. 455. In these circumstances, the Special Rapporteur strongly urged the Government of South Africa to appoint, on an urgent basIs, an independent judicial commission to investigate the role of the police in the violent conflicts and establish the truthfulness or otherwise of the accusations against the police. Re added that if any official was found guilty of the accusations, he or she should be prosecuted and/or disciplined as appropriate, td also requested any information on any action taken by the Government of South Africa in this regard. 656. On the same day, another cable was sent to the Government of South Africa stating that during the aforementioned hearings, information was received from a number of witnesses, including his wife, concerning Mr. S.R. Maharaj, a high—ranking member of the National Executive Committee of the African National Congress, who was in detention under section 29 of the Internal Security Act. AccordIng to the evidence received, a reasonable conclusion could be arrived at that the life of Mr. Maharaj was in danger. 457. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government of ; South Africa to take all necessary measures to ensure the safety and physical integrity of Mr. Maharaj, and, in accordance with the letter and spirit of the United Nations Declaration on a flJi .i1 and Lts destructive consequences in southern Africa, he further strongly appealed for the release of Mr. Maharaj. The Special Rapporteur also requested information on any action taken by the Government in this regard.
- . . ; . . . . . E/CN.4/ 1991f36 page 113 458. On 10 December 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of South Africa transmitting allegations that in numerous incidents of violence that continued in 1990 between members of Inkatha and other residents including members of the African National Congress (ANC), the United Democratic Front (UDF) and the Congress of South African Trade Unions (COSATIJ), hundreds of persons reportedly lost their lives. Since the first clash between Inkatha members and AlTO supporters in Sebokeng on 22 July 1990, in which 2.7 persons reportedly died, incidents of violence reportedly spread from flatal province to the East Rand, West Rand and Soweto. As of OctDber 1990, more than 700 persons were reported to have been killed in these incidents. 459. According to several sources, throughout these incidents of violence, the police maintained an inconsistent approach with respect to the bearing of arms by Inkatha as opposed to non—Inkatha residents. Kwatulu police allegedly did not remain impartial in the violence but even acted as the armed wing of Inkatha. In regard to the incident of violence on 22 July 1990 in Sebokeng, one source stated that although the Minister of Law and Order, the Divisional Commissioner of Police and the Commissioner of Police were informed beforehand of a planned attack by Inkatha on MO and COSATU supporters, 500 to 600 Inkatha members arrived heavily armed and were accompanied by white officers. They allegedly attacked Sebokeng residents in the presence of the police. It was further reported that residents who tried to resist were fired upon by the police. 460. Furthermore, according to figures provided by the South African Human Rights Commission, during the first half of 1990, 170 deaths were caused by police in the course of disruption of public gatherings. OEe victims were allegedly hit by shots fired indiscriminately by police at demonstrators or protesters. By way of an example, it was reported that on 16 February 1990 at least four persons were killed when police tried to turn back demonstrators who were on their way to the Bloemfontein appeals court after a meeting in the township of Eotshabelo, Orange Free State, to protest against forced incorporation into Qua qua. 461. In addition, it was reported on 14 January 1990 that Elias Sanguwane, a black constable from Jeppe police station, was assaulted by his white superiors and subsequently died in hospital of a brain haeinorrhage. 462. It was also reported that on 2.6 July 1990, Taylor Ntsuka, aged 17, was shot dead on the playground of the Dr. Cingo High School in Maokeng, near Kroonstad, by two middle—aged white men dressed in khaki, driving a white Toyota minibus. It was alleged that police knew the identity of the men but that no arrest had been made. 463. Furthermore, several cases of death in detention were reported as follows: (a) In February 1990, Tshebeiale d!ed at Grootvlei police station in East Rand after having been arrestcd as a robbery suspect . According to the police, Tehebelale had resisted arrest and “force had to be used by police, who found stolen property in his pcssesston*; (b) In early 1990, it was learned that Bongani, aged 13, and Chatrakumtat, aged 14, who were detained on 2.0 July 1989 by police at Seearswart police station in connection wIth a students' school boycott, died
E ICN.4 1 1991/3& page 114 after two months' detention, as a result of torture. It was also alleged that the day following their arrest, police returned to the school and tried to break the students' boycott. When the students resisted, the police opened fire, killing three students named Siphiwe, Dwnisay and Wiseman; Cc) On 14 May 1990, a man known as “Andile” was beaten to death by two constables at Huoeansdorp police station. A 16—year—old witness to the incident was allegedly threatened by the constables with death if he named them as responsible for the as ault; Cd) On 1 June 1990, police stated that Donald OEabela Madisha committed suicide by hanging. Be was a teacher and a member of the Mahwelereng Youth Congress, and had been detained on 17 January 1990 in rlahwelereng township, Potzietersrus, under section 29 of the Internal Security Act, It was not known whether any investigation had been carried out into his death; Ce) On 10 July 1990, in iChutsong, Eugene Mbulwana, aged 15, was detained by police. On 12 July 1990, he was transferred to Walverdiend police station, suffering from serious head injuries. Reportedly he was left, unconscious, on the floor for nine hours before being taken to Leratong hospital where he died on 13 July 1990. 464. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of South Africa. Sri Lanka 465. On 8 June 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of Sri Lanka concerning Dr. tlanorani Saravanamuttu, mother of Richard de Zoysa, and Batty Weerakoon, the lawyer representing her at the magisterial inquiry into the abduction and killing of her son in February 1990, who received death threats demanding that they stop pursuing the case. According to the information, on 1 June 1990, Dr. Manorani Saravanaznuttu had informed the Moratuwa magistrate's court that she had identified one of the abductors of her son as a senior superintendent of police in Colombo, who had subsequently been arrested. 466. In view of several recent cases where lawyers end witnesses involved in cases brought against members of the security forces had been threatened and subsequently killed, the Special Rapporteur expreased serious concern for the safety of Dr. Manorani Saravanamtzttu and Batty Weerakoon, and appealed to the Government of Sri Lanka to take all necessary measures to ensure that their right to life was protected. He also requested information about the investigation into these cases of death threats as well as the case of the killing of Richard de Zoysa, and, in particular, on the measures taken by the Government to protect the safety of the above—mentioned two persons. 467. On 1]. July 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Sri Lanka referring to the above—mentioned cable of 8 June 1990 and stating that, according to further Information, the two policemen currently guarding Batty Weerakoon's house had receIved death threats on 22 June 1990 In two letters addressed to them by name. As the names of the pol Ice officers had reportedly not been publIcized, the fear was expressed that there might be accomplices inside the police force.
E/CN.4/ 1991 136 page 115 468. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur reiterated his serious concern for the life of the two police guards and of the two persons referred to in his previous cable and appealed again to the Government of Sri Lanka to take all necessary measures to ensure that their right to life was protected, and requested information concerning the investigation into these cases of death threats as well as on the measures taken by the Government to protect the safety of the above—mentioned four persons. 469. On 28 November 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Sri Lanka transmitting allegations that during the 32 months of the presence of the Indian Peace—Keeping Forces (Il'KF) in the north—eastern part of the country under the Indo—Sri Lanka accord signed in July 1987, a large number of unarmed civilians were killed in a suxmnary manner by members of the IPKF, or by Tamil groups allied to the IPKF and acting with their acquiescence. 670. In addition to the alleged incidents of killings by the IPKF already transmitted to the Government, the following incident was reported: On 2 August 1989 in Valvettitturai, 52 persons were shot dead by IPKF soldiers when they rampaged through the town, shot at residents and set fire to houses and other properties. The victims included Vengadasalasn Subramaniam, aged 60, S. Illayaperumal, aged 70, Rajaguru Javanaraj, aged 11, Aathy Sundareawaran, aged 11. The attack was said to be the reprisal for the LTTE Valvettitturai market ambush on an IPKF patrol in which six soldiers were killed. 471. In June 1990, after the Liberation Tigers of Tainil Eelam (LTTE) reportedly had taken effective control of the north—eastern part of the country, following the withdrawal of the IPKF from Sri Lanka in March 1990, heavy fighting was said to have resumed between the Sri Lankan Government forces and the LTTE, causing a large number of deaths among the civilian population in Jaffna, Trincomalee and Batticaloa districts. During the fighting a large number of civilians were reportedly killed in a summary manner by both sides. While allegations of summary or arbitrary killings by the LTTZ were numerous, including the killings in the eastern part of hundreds of policemen who had surrendered and incidents of killing of Muslims in August 1990, reports were received of killing in a summary manner of hundreds of civilians by Government forces after they regained control of the areas held by the LTTE. Several of the victims were said to have been killed summarily after they had been detained. The following were among such incidents of killings: (a) On 14 June 1990, in Vavuniya, Batticaloa district, Government forces shot and killed unarmed civilians, including Anthony Pi llai, a public health inspector, his wife and son, after they had recaptured Vavuniya police station from the LTTE. About 15 bodies were found on the road; (b) In the last week of June 1990, in Vellavelli village, Battfcaloa district, 15 civilians, including a school teacher, were killed by army and police personnel; (c) After the town of Kalmunai was recaptured by Government forces from the LTTE on 22 June 1990, soldiers shot residents in their homes, including Thiyagarajah. On 22 and 23 June, soldiers rounded up men between the ages
El CL 411 991136 page 116 of 16 and 30, lined them up blindfolded and either shot them or stabbed them to death with bayonets. The bodies were then thrown into shops owned by Taniils and were set on fire. Over 30 bodies were found in one burnt—out shop, including the body of 23—year—old Chandrikumar , 472. Furthermore, it was alleged that Government forces carried out indiscriminate air bombardment and shelling on residential and non—military targets, including schools and hospitals. The following were reported to be among the numerous deaths resulting from indiscriminate bombings: (a) On 13 June 1990, at Amparai Central Camp Tantil Village, 100 persons, including women and children, were killed; (b) On 16 June 1990, in Kalavanchikuddi, 10 patients were killed when the hospital was hit by a bomb; Cc) On 26 June 1990, in Kokkuvil, seven civilians were killed; Cd) On 28 June 1990, in Kilinochi di8trict, eight students were killed when their netwut am under tt ek (a) On 30 June 1990, in Pulmottai area, Trincomalee, 40 Tamil displaced persons were killed by gunfire from a Sri Lankan navy vessel. 473. In addition, in the southern and central parts of the country, killings and death threats directed at suspected supporters of the Janatha Vimukthi. Peramuna (People's Liberation Front, JUP), opposition members of Parliament and other suspected opponent8 of the Government allegedly continued to occur, although there were fewer reports of such occurrences compared to the period from August 1989 to February 1990. The following such cases were reportedt (a) On 18 December 1989, Lalith Warushahennadi, aged 24, a student of agriculture at Peradeniya University, was found dead in Tellabur after having been detained by army personnel on 12 December at the Yakkalamalla Army Camp in Calle district; (b) Following the Government's “shoot—on—sight” orders to police reportedly issued on 8 July 1990 in the southern provinces, scores of bodies were found dumped in places such as Diyagama, Gampaha district; Bandaragama, Kalutara district; Embilipitiya, Ratnapura district; Suriyawewa and Beliatta, Ranibantota district. 474. With regard to the case of Richard de Zoysa, which was referred to in the Special Rapporteur's cables of 8 June and 11 July 1990 to the Government, it : was reported that the magisterial inquiry into his death was discontinued on 30 August 1.990 nd thnt tin Attorney Goner l decided to tnke no notion ifigninet the senior police officer named by de Zoysa's mother as having been among : those who abducted her son in February 1990. According to the information received, the case was being investigated by police, although police officers were alieged to have been involved in the abduction and killing of de Zoysa. :
E/CN..4/199 1/36 page 117 475. On 17 January 1990, a reply WAS received from the Covernment of Sri Lanka to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 20 October 1989 (see E/GN.4/1990/22, paras. 386 to 388) and to his cable dated 9 November 1989 (see E/cN.4/1990/22, paras. 389 to 392), commenting on the following cases: (a) Charitha Larikapura: According to police investigations, two unidentified persona had on 7 July 1989 entered the house where Mr. Lankapura was boarded and shot him dead. A magIsterial inquest was held into this incident and a verdict of “murder by shooting” was returned by the magistrate who ordered the police to conduct further investigations; (b) Kanchana Abeypala: Investigations revealed that he was killed by an unknown gunman who had entered the house on 20 August 1989. Mr. Abeypala's father was also injured in the incident. A magisterial inquest was held and the magistrate ordered the police to conduct further investigations. The police have reported that those living at Mr. Abeypala's house who had seen the gunman failed to co—operate and that this has hindered investigations. No suspect had yet been arrested in connection with this murder and the police investigation was continuing; (c) Sarath Karaliyadda: OEe investigation revealed that on 26 October 1989, eight armed persons dressed in civilian clothes entered Mr. Karaliyadda's house in Teldeniya police area. These persons had ransacked the house and removed jewellery and cash. They led Mr. Karaliyadda away from the house, and his dead body was subsequently found about a quarter of a mile away. A magisterial inquest was held by the Teldeniya magistrate and was to be resumed after further investigations. 476. The reply also stated the following on the situation in Sri Lanka: (a) Unsettled security conditions in the northern, eastern and southern parts of Sri Lanka due to the escalation of violence remained a matter of serious concern to the Covernment. OEese incidents posed a serious problem for law enforcement authorities in that normal investigations into these activities proved extremely difficult; where investigations had been initiated and Judicial inquiries held these could not be completed due to the fact that the law enforcement authorities had to cope with an unprecedented situation in maintaining law and order in the context of conditions prevailing at that time. The Judicial authorities, however, continue to investigate reported incidents under the normal laws, including under habeas corous procedure which was available even under the emergency regulations; (b) In the northern and eastern parts of the country where the IPKF was present the security situation was not conducive to normal investigations. Despite the IPKF presence militant Tamil groups in the area had not been disarmed as envisaged. The introduction of more weapons, the existence of illegal armed groups and the resulting internecine clashes between rival militant groups have placed serious impediments in the way of the efforts of restoring peace and normalcy in the areas concerned as well as on the conduct of normal investigations into reported violent incidents. To overcome these, the Government took a number of steps: Ci) Implementing the provisions of the Provincial Council Act in the areas of law and ordor;
. . - . . . - . . . ..-.... . . . . .. - . .. . — E/CN.47199l/36 page 118 (ii) Facilitating negotiations between the Government and the one militant group (LflE) which had hitherto remained outside the democratic process; . (iii) Secured agreement with the Government of India to complete the withdrawal of the IPKF by 31 March 1990. The Government was also working towards securing a cease—fire among the rival groups who were engaged in violence; (iv) To expedite the ICRC's access to the northern and eastern parts of the country; Cc) With regard to incidents reported in areas other than the north and east, constraints on investigations also existed. However, the situation improved consequent to measures taken by the Government: (i) The Government convened an All Party Conference (APC) to find a consensus among democratic political parties with a view to : restoring peace and normalcy, and to address and resolve the crucial national issues which underlie the problems the country has been facing; (ii) The Government was seriously concerned about reports concerning violence by militant groups in the south which did not accept political negotiations as well as about reported acts of violence by other unidentified groups. The Government ordered the security forces and the police to identify and disband any illegal paramilitary groups in all parts of the country. It also gave clear instructions to law enforcement agencies that such groups, if they existed, should be treated as terrorists. An independent investigation unit comprising senior civilian and police officials was set up to investigate this alleged phenomenon and to make recommendations for the disbandment of such groups, if any should exist. OEe public was requested to provide information to this unit; (iii) The Government invited the IC RC to exercise its traditional humanitarian functions in the country; (iv) OEe Government also appointed an independent commission to go into all aspects of the youth unrest and make recommendations on possible courses of action to address the rootcauses of the present problems; Cd) Whilst the Government was deeply concerned about the acts of violence committed in the country in the past, it was nevertheless hopeful that the political efforts being undertaken on a broad front would restore democratic institutions and the functioning of normal law and order machinery. 477. On 28 December 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Sri Lanka to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 28 November 1990, providing information on the efforts made by the Government wIth regard to the situations n the north and east of Sri Lanka as well as in the southern and central parts of the country. It also provided a brief account on the progress of the investigation into the case of Richard de Zoysa.
E / ON • 4/1991 / 36 page 119 478. With regard to the situation in the north and east of the country, the reply stated that the Government persisted in its efforts to resolve the socio—political issues involved, through negotiations with all parties irrespective of their ethnic origin, with a view to the devolution of governmental authority; that in pursuit of this endeavour to find a compromise acceptable to all parties, regional power—sharing structures in the form of provincial councils were formed by the adoption of the 13th amendment to the Constitution; that as a result, all political parties and groups, including the Tamil parties representing the population of the north and east, entered the democratIc political process and that the Liberation Tigers of Tamil Eelam (LTTE) was the only group which refused to do so. According to the reply, the LTTE refused to participate in both provincial and national elections, while simultaneously continuing their acts of terror and intimidaticn against the people of the north and east and against LTTE's political rivals belonging to the Tamil community. It was stated that with a view to persuading the group to renounce violence, the Government had initiated and engaged in a dialogue with the LTTE for over one year. All possible concrete measures were taken to enable them to feel confidence in the negotiating processes including the withdrawal of the IPKF from Sri Lanka in March 1990, and the dissolution of the North East Provincial Council and the holding of new elections in those areas, thus providing an opportunity for the LTTE to participate, which the LTTE refused to do. 479. It was further stated that the process of devolution of power to the Councils was further expedited, that the presence of the Government security forces in the area after the withdrawal of the IP1ZF was substantially reduced, that the remaining security forces were confined to their barracks and that action was taken to create a provincial police force representing the ethnic ratio of the respective areas. It was also stated that the security forces were instructed not to do anything which might be seen as jeopardizing the ongoing dialogue with the LTTE. 480. However, according to the reply, the LTTE resorted to unilateral and unprovoked violence on 10 June 1990, on police stations in the north and east. It was stated that these police stations were manned mainly by Tamil policemen and had even been set up at the request of the LTTE; that a large umber of policemen were abducted, and that some were brutally killed. It was also stated that two cease—fires offered by the Government were totally disregarded by the LTTE. OEe Government could not ignore the violent and unprovoked attacks initiated by the LTTE, which had flouted all attempts at a negotiated settlement and had systematically murdered most of the Tamil political leaders who had advocated the path of democracy and negotiations. With regard to allegations of indiscriminate bombing by the security forces of civilian targets, the reply emphasized that the actions which the security forces were forced to undertake against the LTTE were directed not against civilians but against the terrorism of the LTTE, and that in fact the security forces refrained from taking action against the LTTE in certain areas such as the Mannar area, even at the expense of conclusive military action, as the LTTE deliberately took refuge behind civilians. It was also stated that the Government remained committed to a negotiated solution to the problems and continued to negotiate with all other Tamil parties and others within the framework of the All Party Conference convened for this purpose.
E/CN. 14/1991/36 page 120 481. According to the reply, over a million persons of all communities have been forced to flee their homes for other parts of the country and even overseas because of forced conscription, extortion and robberies committed by the LflE; that civilian administration and transport have been disrupted as a result of acts of sabotage by the LTTE; that atrocities were committed by the LTTE not only against Tamil and Sinhalese civilians but also against Muslims in the north and east, including the gruesome massacres at a Muslim mosque in 1990 and the forced expulsion of over 40,000 Muslims at one time from their homes in the Mannar area. 482. In its reply, the Government of Sri Lanka acknowledged that any situation of conflict where security forces were called upon to take action against terrorists who merge with the local population could pose hardships for civilians and operational constraints. It was stated that great care was exercised to avoid civilian areas and that advance notice was given to civilians when operations were undertaken to relieve soldiers besieged by the LTTE terrorists. 483. With regard to the situation in the southern and central parts of the country, the reply stated that normality had been restored, although there were reports concerning some residual violence as a result of unidentified groups reportedly taking revenge on those believed to be responsible for killings attributed to subversive elements during a period of escalating violence in 1990. It was stated that the Government wag seriously concerned over such acts, which are illegal under the laws of Sri Lanka, and was taking severe measures against those responsible for exceeding their legitimate duties. It was further stated that !n order to investigate all such reported illegal activities, an independent committee headed by two retired judges of the Supreme Court identified this problem last year and the 2residential Commission on youth unrest also made reference to this issue; that a mechanism was already worked out to receive information from the public regarding the activities of such groups; and that clear and unequivocal instructions had been given to law enforcement authorities to identify, disarm and disband all such groups. 484. With regard to the case of Richard de Zoysa referred to in the Special Rapporteur's communications, it was stated that investigations were continuing with a view to identifying and prosecuting the offenders in accordance with the laws of the country. It was also stated that the magisterial inquest was inconclusive as to the identity of the suspected offenders, as insufficient evidence was available against the police officer named by the victim's mother. With regard to the observation that the police are being entrusted with investigations into allegations involving police officers themselves, the reply pointed out that the law enforcement authorities had to depend on the investigative arm of the police to obtain legally valid evidence to support prosecutions, and that there had been other similar instances involving polite officers which had eventually resulted in their detention , It was stated that while the authorities continued to pursue investigations, the Sri Lankan Parliament would shortly debate a motion calling for a commission of inquiry into this case.
E IGN.4/199 1/36 page 121 Sudan 485. On 8 January 1990, the Special Rapporteur Bent a cable to the Government of Sudan regarding the information received that Gergis A1—Ghous Boutros, an assistant pilot of Sudan Airways, sentenced to death on 24 December 1989 by special court number 1 in Khartoum f or having contravened recently introduced currency regulations, might be facing imminent execution. According to the information, Gergis Al—Ghous Boutros had been allowed to have only limited legal assistance and, under the terms of the procedures of the special court, could lodge an appeal against his sentence only with the chief justice; he did not have the right to appeal to a higher tribunal. 486. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur, referring to articles 6 and 14 o the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights to which Sudan was a party and also to safeguards 5 and 6 of the annex to Economic and Social Council resolution 1984/So of 25 May 1984 entitled “Safeguards : guaranteeing protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty”, appealed to the Government to make every effort to guarantee the right to life of Cergis Al—Ghous Boutros and requested information on the above—mentioned case and, in particular, on the legal proceedings according to which this person had been sentenced to death. 487. On 7 Play 1990, another cable was sent to the Government of Sudan concerning nine persons — Abderrahmane Farah, Bakir Adel, Abderrassul Al—Nur, Lieutenant General Fawzi Abmed Al—Fadel, Lieutenant General Mahdi Babu Nimir, Fadlalla Burma Nassir, Lieutenant Abderrahmane Sadig Al—Mabdi, Abderrahniane Al—Sayed and Brigadier Osman Abdulmutaleb — who were reported to be among a group of over 35 people arrested in late March 1990 for their alleged involvement in a conspiracy to overthrow the Government. 488. In the same context it was reported that 28 senior army officers had been executed on 24 April 1990 after being convicted by a military court. It was alleged that they had been executed following a surmnary trial and that they had been denied legal representation and the right to appeal to a higher court. 489. Concerned with the fate of the above—mentioned persons who might also have been tried summarily and might be in danger of execution, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to make every effort to guarantee their right to life and requested information in this regard. 490. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Sudan transmitting allegations as follows: (a) On 24 April 1990, 28 retired and serving army officers, accused of involvement in an attempted were executed after a summary trial, which lasted for two hours. Before and during the trial, the rights of the accused, including the right to legal counsel, were not granted. The names of the 28 persons were given as follows: Major—General (retired) Khalid al—Zein Aft, Major—General (retired) Osman Idriss al—Bolol, MaJor—General (retired) Hussein Abdel Gadir al Kadru, Br!gadler (retired) Mohamed Osman Ahmad Karrar, Staff—Colonel Ismat Mirqhani OEha, Staff—Colonel Bash ir Mustafa Bashlr, Staff—Colonel (retired) Mohamed Ahinad Grassim, Colonel Sa lah al Sayyid Hussein, Lieutenant—Colonel Bashir Malt Abu Dik, Lieutenant—Colonel Mohamed Abde ]. Aziz Ibrahim, Lieutenant—colonel (retlred) al Sayyid Hussein Abdel Rahirn, Ljeutenant—Colcnel (ret Ired) Abdel Noneim Hassan Ali Karrar,
E IcN.4 1 199l/36 page 122 Lieutenant—Colonel (retired) Bashir at Tayib Nohamed Saleh, Major Salab Al flardiri Babiken, Major et Fatib Khalid Khalil, Major Osman al Zein Abdutlah, Major Babiker Abdel Rahinan Nugudallali, Air Farce Major Attain at Fatib Yusuf, Major at Sheik at Baqir al Sheikh, Major Mu'awiyah Yasin A u, Major Nihad Ismail Hamidah, Major Isam at Din Abu at Grassim t4ohamed, Major (retired) at Fatih Ahmad Llyas, Major (retired) Sid Abmad Salih, Major (retired) Taj ci Din Fatih at Rahman, Captain Muddathir Mohamed Mahjub, Air Force Captain Mustafa Awad Khawajali, Captain (retired) Abdel Moniem Khasr Kumerier; (b) During the past year, several 6ther persons were said to have been executed after having been sentenced to death by the Special Courts. The procedure followed by the Special Court allegedly did not guarantee the tights of the defendant as provided for in the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, including the right to legal counsel before or during the trial and the right to appeal to a higher tribunal. Cases were described as follows: (i) On 14 April 1989, in Khartoum, Arkango Agadad was executed after having been sentenced to death by the special court No. 2 in Khartoum; (ii) On 5 February 1990, in Khartoum, Gergis Ai—Ghous Boutros, an assistant pilot working for Sudan Airways, was executed after having been sentenced to death on 2 * December 1989 by special court No. 1 for breaking currency regulations. He was accused of attempting to smuggle foreign currency out of the country; (iii) On 17 December 1989, Sayed Ahined All Gaballay, a suspected drug dealer, was executed; (iv) On 17 December 1989, Magdi Mahgoub, a businessman, was executed for a similar offence; (v) On 18 February 1990, in Omdurman, Hani Mohamed Hamad was sentenced to death by the special court in Omdunnan, after having been convicted of drug trafficking; (vi) On 7 September 1989, Jalal Ahmed Bacre was sentenced to death by the special court in Blue Nile region, after having been convicted of drug trafficking; (c) In the situation of internal armed conflict in the southern part of the country where rebel farces called the Sudan People's Liberation Army (5PM) were active and in several instances killed soldiers after they had surrendered to the rebel forces, Government forces killed in a sununary manner unarmed villagers during counter—rebel operations. Some examples of such incidents were described as follows: (i) On 23 Apr Il 1989, In a v Illage near Abri in the Nuba mountaIns, 17 cIv Ilians (men, women and children) were killed in the village of tessa by soldiers. The names of it victims were given;
El ON. 4 / 1991/36 page 123 (ii) On 19 July 1989, 34 men and woman were killed by soldiers. The names of 11 victims were given. OEeir bodies were dumped in a well in the north—west town of Wan; (iii) On 7 October 1989, in El Markhiyat Hills, near Khartoum, U soldiers, including 14 southerners and 7 from Nuba, suspected of collaboration with SPLA, were summarily executed on orders of the minister for cabinet affairs; (d) Furthermore, on 21 April 1990, in secret detention in Khartoum, Mi Fadul, aged 30, a medical doctor, died as a result of torture. 491. On 28 November 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Sudan transmitting allegations as follows: (a) In 1990, several persons were sentenced to death by special courts whose judges were appointed by the President or by military commanders. Some of the sentences were pronounced under the Narcotics Act of September 1989 which carries a mandatory death sentence for drug trafficking. According to information received, the safeguards provided for by the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights in order to guarantee a fair trial were not respected in the trials by the special courts. In particular, legal representation before or during trial and appeals to a higher court were allegedly not allowed. OEe following case was described as an example: In August 1990, Mohammed Fadilallab Othman was sentenced to death under the Narcotics Act of September 1989 by the special court in Omdurman after being convicted of drug trafficking; (b) In the context of internal armed conflict, renewed in October 1989 after a series of unilateral cease—fires, and particularly in the southern region of the country where the Sudanese People's Liberation Army (SPLA) had been active, numerous unarmed civilians were killed in a summary manner by Government forces or the militia for their suspected sympathy for the SPLA. Since the Popular Defence Act was passed in November 1989, the militia have been trained, supported and controlled by the army. Incidents were described as follows: Ci) In late October and early November 1989, at least 44 unarmed villagers were killed by Government militia in the Keiga Alkhel area in southern Kordofan. Over half of the victims were women and children; (ii) More than tOO unarmed Nuba villagers were killed in military raids in October 1989 in the Lagawa area in southern Kordofan; (iii) Between February and May 1990, dozens of unarmed civilians were killed by Government troops as a convoy of 13,000 soldiers travelled from Malahal to Juba in southern Sudan. Several villages were burned and others looted by the Government soldiers. Civilians in the area around the town of Ayod were reported to have been targeted, including the following four elderly men burned to death in Dior: Gai Nabior, Wan Puot, Bilieu Nyar and Kong Wen.
E 1Ct4.6 1l991/36 page 124 492. On 5 February 1990 a reply was received from the Government of Sudan to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 14 December 1989 (see E/CN.41l990/22, paras. 397 to 399) stating that the Secretary—General for Special Political Questions, Regional Co—operation, Decolonization and trusteeship of Sudan, had already made representations to the Head of State of Sudan on the case of Dr. Mamoun Mohamed Hussein. 493. On 21 May 1990, anbther reply was received from the Government of Sudan to the Special Repporteur's cable of 7 May 1990 stating that as regards the nine persons, the Government had set up a commission of inquiry to investigate their involvement in the conspiracy and that if adequate evidence and proof were established beyond any reasonable doubt, they would be indicted end would face a just trial in accordance with the law. It was also stated that concerning the 28 who were executed by firing squad, these persons had been tried by a competent high military court and that the judgement of this court was fair and could not be subject to an appeal in conformity with the stipulations of the relevant military laws. Zssrin ame 494. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Suriname transmitting allegations that on 26 March 1990 in Paramaribo, two bodyguards of Ronnie Brunswijk, the leader of the ‘Jungle Commando”, a rebel group, were shot dead by a member of the national army while they were accompanying Ronnie Brunswijk and his advisors to a meeting with the commander of the army for peace negotiations. The two bodyguards were allegedly not armed when they were shot. 495. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Suriname. Ar ab Re ub f tc 496. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of the Syrian Arab Republic transmitting allegations that Nunir Fransis died on 14 or 15 April 1990 in al—Muwassa'a Civil Hospital in Damascus due to internal bleeding caused by torture inflicted during his detention. Munir Fransis was reportedly arrested together with some 15 persons by al—A i im aX Siyassi at the end of March 1990 in Damascus after slogans critical of the Government were found written on the walls of the town. 497. On 28 November 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of the Syrian Arab Republic transmitting allegations that on 13 and 14 October 1990, Syrian troops reportedly carried out joint military operations with the Lebanese Army against the forces of General Aoun in Dahr—al—Wahsh and Souk—al—Gharb, Lebanon. In the context of this armed conflict, a large number of persons were allegedly killed in a summary manner by Syrian military, in acts of retaliation for heavy Syrian losses allegedly inflicted by Aoun supporters who, according to Syrian military sources opened fire after having waved wh Ite flags and having pretended to surrender The victims allegedly
EIcN.4 1199 1135 page 125 comprised, inter el la , unarmed Lebanese civilians and Lebanese soldiers of General Aoun, captured by the Syrian military. OEe following canes were described: . (a) On 13 October 1990, approximately 100 soldiers of General Aoun were reportedly killed in a summary manner by Syrian military after being captured and taken as prisoners at Dshr—al—Wahsh, east of Beirut. OEe bodies brought from the forest near bahr—al—Wahsh by the Red Cross to the Baabda general hospital bore signs of having been shot at close range with hands tied and in a kneeling position; (b) On 14 October 1990, 14 unarmed civilians were killed in an arbitrary manner by Syrian troops in the aftermath of the armed conflict when Syrian troops reportedly ransacked homes in Bsous township in search of Aoun loyalists. 498. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of the Syrian Arab Republic. Tunisia 499. On 28 November 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Tunisia, transmitting an allegation that on 3 May 1990, the body of B4di Boutaieb, a student, was found in the desert bearing signs of torture, after having been forcibly recruited into the Tunisian army after the February 1990 student uprisings and having disappeared from the B&nada military base on 4 April 1990. 500. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Tunisia. 501. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Turkey transmitting allegations that during the past year several persons were killed by security forces in the south—eastern part of the country. OEe victims were said to be suspected of membership in or support for Kurdish guerrilla groups. Cases were descrIbed as follows: (a) On 16 September 1989, in Kumcati Village, flasan tltsnc, aged 28, Tashir Sevim, aged 25 and Hasan Caner, aged 39, were abducted around 7.00 p.m. while they were driving. OEey were later found dead near Ozbek village in Mardin province and the time of their death was established to have been at about 11.00 p.m. It was alleged that the three were killed by security forces; (b) On 19 July 1989, in Kemerli. Village, in Sirnak province, ; Mahmut Yasar, aged lt+, was killed by security forces while he was herding sheep; Cc) On l B July 1989, three inhabitants of Yoncali Village, Hakkari provInce, were killed by a security forces conunando unit. The three were: Sehmuz Orhan, Bfrnyaznin Orhan and Sabri Orhan; Cd) On 17 September 1989, near flerebasi village, Silopi district, Mard ln provInce, six villagers were killed by security forces. OEe names of the six were given as: Fevzi Beyan, Resit Even, tJzeyir Arzik, Abbas Cigdem,
E IcN .4/ 199 1/36 page 126 Sadun Ecyan and Munir Aydin. OEe Emergency Legislation Deputy Regional Governor reportedly stated on 17 september 1989 that nine terrorists had been killed near Derebasi Village when they had not obeyed an order to stop; S Ce) On 2 October 1989, in Yakaribesparmak, GUrptvar district, Nedim Otter, a brother of a tribe leader, was killed in a summary manner by security forces. On 4 October the Regional Governor reportedly stated that Nedim Otter wag one of six “terrorists” who had died in an armed clash with security forces; (f) On 7 November 1989, in Suruc, All Ay was shot dead by security forces while he was sitting in the house of his uncle Igget Ay. The deputy prosecutor of Sanltiurfa reportedly stated on 15 November 1989 that a Kurdish Workers Party (PKX) militant had been killed in an armed clash when he refused to obey an order to stop. 502. On 28 November 1990, another letter was sent to the Government of Turkey, transmitting a number of alleged cases of deaths in detention as a result of torture and also an incident of killings by the gen nxm,zi of unarmed civilians in a Kurdish region. Cases were described as follows: (a) On 6 May 1990, Mi Akkan died in the custody of the political police in the Antalya police headquarters after having been arrested on 5 May 1990 at approximately 10.00 p.m. with two other relatives on suspicion of having given shelter to a member of an illegal organization. On 6 May his uncle was informed at the police statIon that Ali Akkan had committed suicide by jumping out of a window. On 11 May 1990, the Antalya prosecutor decided that there : were no grounds for a prosecution in this case. This relatives and members of the Human Rights Association, not convinced by the official version of his . , death, appealed against the prosecutor's decision and demanded a second autopsy; (b) On 4 June 1990, Serdar Cekic Abbasoglu was found dead in his cell at the Ankara closed prison after having been brought there three days earlier from Ankara police headquarters. When he arrived at the prison, he was said to be bleeding from his mouth and nose. Re had been detained on suspicion of burglary. An official investigation into this case was reportedly initiated but its findings have not yet been made public; (c) On 9 June 1990 an armed attack on the Kurdish village of Cevrimli was reportedly carried out by the ninth regi ment of the gendarmerie in which 26 unarmed civilians, primarily women and children, were shot to death, in retaliation f or villagers who had refused to become “protectors of the village” under the control of the security forces. 503. On 23 October 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Turkey to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 26 July 1990 transmitting Information on cases a follows: (a) Thasan Utanc, Tahain Sevim, and Rasan Caner: OEe inveat gation was being carried out by the public prosecutor of Idil and had so far indicated that the bodies were found with eyes blindfolded and hands tIed, shot with 7.62—cal Ibre bullets from Kallshn!kov rifles;
E/CN.4/l991/36 page 127 (b) Nehinet (tlabmut) Yasar: The conclusion of the investigation by the office of the district governor and confirmed by the provincial governor was that he was shot dead for not obeying orders to stop during a security operation near Kemerli, Sirnak province, and that no grounds existed for further proceedings; (c) Seyhmuz Orhan, BUnyaxnin Orhan, and Sabri Orhan: Sabri and Zfrnyaiuin Orhan died on the spot in a exchange of fire between security forces and terrorists; Seyoeuz was wounded and subsequently died in Hakkari state hospital. Although there was no need for judicial proceedings, the decision was referred to the Council of State for further examination; Cd) Fevai Beyan, Resit Even, lizeyir Arzik, Abbas Cigdem, Sadun Beyan, and Munir Aydin: Six of nine persons were killed in an armed clash with security forces, according to an investigation by the office of the governor and the Council of State, and according to a decision by the administrative council of ilardin province, there were no grounds for further proceedings; Ce) Nedim Oner: It was established that Nedim Oner opened fire against security forces in order to enable another terrorist to escape from a gendarmerie and was shot dead in the crossfire. Competent authorities had previously issued an arrest warrant for his alleged co—operation with a terrorist organization and drug—smuggling; (f) Ali Ay: An investigation by competent authorities concluded there were no grounds for action against security officials who shot Ali Ay dead white attempting to arrest him on charges of belonging to a terrorist organization. 504. On 11 December 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Turkey to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 28 November 1990, providing the following information on the cases transmitted: (a) A u Akkan: A public lawsuit was initiated against three policemen on the basis of the Antalya public prosecutor's indictment dated 19 September 1990. In the indictment, the public prosecutor demanded the punishment of the policemen concerned according to articles 448, 31 and 33 of the Turkish penal code. The trial proceedings were still continuing at the 2nd Anta lya high criminal court. The court requested the forensic department to carry out a new medical inquiry in light of the additional information supplied by the witnesses; (b) Serdar Cekic Abbasoglu: He had been Arrested for theft. On 4 June 1990 he was found dead in his bed inside the prison. The prosecutor immediately initiated an investigation. No evidence of trauma could be found as a result of the autopsy. No trace of poison could be detected in the beverages or in the food found in the room of the decensed. itistopatholo ical analysis of internal organs revealed no sign of ill—treatment or induction of extraneous agents into the body. Doctors established the cause of death a heart failure and aspfration nsuffLcLency resulting from defects in the coronary artery. Consequently, the public prosecutor decIded on 4 September 1990 that there was no ground for further action;
El CN. 4/1991 / 36 page 128 Cc) Massacre in Cevrimli: On 10 June 1990, a group of PiCK terrorists raided Cevrimli village, Sirnak province, murdering 26 civilians, including women and children, Attached to the Government's reply on this matter was a news report front the Turkish daily Tercuman , a statement issued on 13 June 1990 by the Department of State of the United States of America and a joint declaration by the Turkish parliamentarians attending the Conference on Security and Co—operation (CSCE) held in Copenhagen in June 1990, all of which supported the Government's position. Union of Soviet Socialist Republics 505. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics transmitting allegations as follows: (a) In a dispute which arose between Azeris and Armenians in 1987 over the jurisdiction of Nagorno—Karabakh Autonomous region, and in intercommunal violence which continued in Armenia and Azerbaijan, more than 300 persons died on both sides. Among the reported incidents was the following: On 30 January 1990, during a demonstration in the Azeri capital of Baku, more than 30 Armenian civilians were killed by the demonstrators, including two women who were thrown from a high building and one pregnant woman who was burned alive. It was reported that police and soldiers took no steps to protect the Armenians; (b) Furthermore, it was reported that on 31 October 1989, at the FL. 350/5 Strict Regime Camp (I lK) in Pietchorsk region, Komi Autonomous Soviet Socialist Republic, the prisoner Pavel Samsonov, aged 22, died allegedly after having been beaten by the captain on duty when he rejected the captain's homosexual advances, The prison doctors reportedly stated that pneumonia was the cause of his death. 506. On 12 December 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics, transmitting allegations that killings of unarmed Armenians, both within the borders of Armenia and in the region of Nagorno—Karabakh, allegedly by members of the Soviet armed forces and also by Azeris who allegedly acted under the control of the Soviet army, continued to occur throughout the year 1990. Specific cases were reported as follows: (a) On 27 May 1990, in Yerevan, Armenia, six persons were shot dead by Soviet troops which opened fire at demonstrators; (b) On 6 september 1990, in the village of Khoznavar, Goris region, Armenia, Soviet soldiers entered the village together with Azeris in their tanks and killed two shepherds, Khachik and Aram Alaverdian, and took 163 head of cattle; S Cc) On 16 September l99O on the road to the village of Karashen, Cons regIon, Armenia, Soviet soldiers attacked and killed Vartegea Ohanian who was transporting agricultural produce in his truck; a
E/CN.4/ 1991/36 page 129 (a) On 12 October 1990, after midnight, in the village of Khenatsagh, Cons region, Armenia, two shepherds, A. Hagopjanian and Y. Mirzoyan, were killed by soldiers, and their 1,400 head of cattle were stolen; (e) On 22 October 1990, in the village of Leninavan, Flartakert region, Karabakh, Soviet soldiers killed a man named Marten while looting. 507. On 14 January 1991; cable was sent to the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics transmitting information received that on 13 January 1991, at least 13 civilian demonstrators were killed and over 100 of them injured when Soviet troops seized the broadcast facilities in Vilnius. It was alleged that paratroopers backed by tanks opened fire at unarmed crowds gathered about the broadcasting centre. 508. In view of the continuing tense situation in Lithuania, the Special Rapporteur appealed to the Government to take such measures as to ensure that there would be no further loss of life and that the right to life of the individual as provided for under article 6 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights was fully guaranteed and protected. Be requested information from the Government on the above—mentioned incident and also on the measures taken to prevent further deaths. 309. On 23 January 1990, a letter was received from the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics, in addition to its previous reply dated 8 January 1990 (see E/CN.4/l990/22, paras. 425 and 426) to the Special Rapporteur's cable of 1 December 1989 concerning the case of A. Zapevalov (see E/CN.4/1990/22, pans. 422 and 423). 5104 The letter stated that the legislation in force in the USSR provides that no person may be executed except by the sentence of a court of law. 511. It was stated that the rights of the defendant in cases of this kind were adequately protected, as article 22 of the Fundamentals of Criminal Procedure of USSR and the Codes of Criminal Procedure of the Union's Republics provide for the right to defence counsel in cases involving persons accused of crimes punishable by the death penalty. This right is exercised from the moment the accused is told the preliminary investigation is over, at which time all the records of the case are presented to him for review. This ensures the participation of defence counsel in judicial proceedings (see, e.g. article 49, para. 5 of the Code of Criminal Procedure of the Russian SSR). It was stated also that after the judgernent has been rendered, the defendant, or his or her defence counsel, or legal representative has the right to appeal. Such appeal stays the execution of the judgement. It was stated further that only the judgements rendered by the Supreme Court of the USSR and the Supreme Courts of the Union's Republics are not subject to appeal. Such judgements t may, however, be reviewed at the Union level or at Republic level. In the first case, the Prosecutor General of the USSR, the Chairman of the Supreme Court of the USSR or one of their deputies may file a protest w&th the Plenu m of the Supreme Court of the USSR. In the second case, the Prosecutor of a Union Republic, the Chairman of the Supreme Court of a Union Republic or one of their deputies may file a protest with the Plenum of the Supreme Court of a Union Republic. In addition, defence counsel of the convicted person may petition the above—mentioned bodies. It was stated also that after a death sentence has taken legal effect, the convicted person has the r Ight to address
E/CN.4 1 1991/36 page 130 a petition for pardon, to a State body, namely the Presidium of the Supreme Soviet of the USSR or the Presidium of the Supreme Soviet of a Union Republic, depending on the respective jurisdiction. This petition is subject to mandatory examination. . 512. It was stated that the entire list of rights of the defendant as guaranteed by the law had been given to the convict, A. Zapevalov. 513. On 9 October 1990, a reply was received from the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 26 July 1990, transmitting information on the following cases: (a) With regard to the 30 January 1990 incidents alleged to have occurred in Azeri, Baku, according to the Procurator's Office of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics, the incidents did not take place; (b) With regard to the 31 October 1989 death in custody of Pavel Saxnsonov, aged 22, in the Corrective Labour Establishment (flu), criminal proceedings were instituted and the investigation was under way. United States of A merica 514. On 3 May 1990, the Special Rapporteur sent a cable to the Government of the United States of America referring to his previous cable of 9 November 1989 concerning the case of Dalton Prejean to which he had received a reply from the Government dated 24 November 1989 (see E/CN.4/199O/22, paras. 428 to 433). It was alleged that according to new information, Dalton Prejean, who had been found to be mentally retarded and had had a history of mental illness in addition to the fact that he was aged 17 when he had committed the murder, was scheduled to be executed on 15 May 1990. 515. Although he was very well aware of the position of the Government as explained in the above—mentioned reply, the Special Rapporteur recalled the relevant norms adopted by United Nations bodies. In this connection, he referred, in addition, to article 6 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights and to Economic and Social Council resolution 1984/50, already quoted in his previous cable, and to Economic and Social Council resolution 1989/64 of 24 May 1989 entitled “Implementation of the safeguards guaranteeing protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty”. In paragraph 1, the resolution “Recommends that Member States take steps to implement the safeguards and strengthen further the protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty, where applicable, by: ... (d) Eliminating the death penalty for persons suffering from mental retardation or extremely limited mental competence, whether at the stage of sentence or execution .. .“ 514 . the Special Rapportes v appealed to the Govet-nment to oefle every po ibte affort to find a way to apare Dalton Prejean's life , 517. On 17 December 1990, a cable was sent to the Government of the United States of America concerning the case of Christopher Burger who was scheduled to be executed on 18 December 1990. According to the intormatirnh Chriatophet' burger waa aged 17 when committing the offence for which he was sentenced to death, and in addition was found, in August 1989, to be suffering from long—term mental illness and organic brain impairment.
E /CM .4(1.991(36 page 131 518. Although the Special Rapporteur was aware of the fact that the minimum age at which the death penalty may be imposed in the State of Georgia is 17, he appealed to the Government to make every possible effort to spare the life of Christopher Burger. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur referred to relevant international instruments and decisions adopted by the United Nations, particularly article 6, paragraph 5 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights which states that “the death sentence shall not be imposed for crimes committed by persons below eighteen years of age...”, and to Economic and Social Council resolution 1984/50 of 25 May 1984 entitled “Safeguards guaranteeing protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty”. In paragraph 3, the resolution recommended that “persons below 18 years of age at the time of the commission of the crime shall not be sentenced to death, nor shall the death sentence be carried out on ... persons who have become insane”. OEe Special Rapporteur referred also to Economic and Social Council resolution 1989/64 of 24 May 1989, entitled “Implementation of the safeguards guaranteeing protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty” which recommends in paragraph I that “Member States take steps to implement the safeguards and strengthen further the protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty, where applicable, by ... Cd) Eliminating the death penalty for pt rsons suffering from mental retardation or extremely limited mental competence, whether at the stage of sentence or execution ...“ 519. On 16 May 1990, a reply was received from the Government of the United States of Mierica to the Special Rapporteur's above—mentioned cable of 3 May 1990 stating that the imposition of the death penalty in the United States was neither summary nor arbitrary, and conformed to all rules of international law binding on the United States and that the case of Mr. Prejean was no exception. It was stated that he was duly convicted in a jury trial, and exercised his extensive rights to appeal his conviction and sentence in both State and Federal courts and that in those proceedings, Mr. Prejean would have been able to raise relevant defences and introduce mitigating factors, including retardation, mental illness and youth. 520. It was further stated that the power to commute the sentence of Mr. Prejean lay not with the Federal Government but with the Governor of the State of Louisiana. Venezuela 521. On 11 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Venezuela transmitting allegations concerning the events in February and March 1989 during sihich several persons died, in addition to those already transmitted to the Government of Venezuela by the Special Rapporteur's letter of 25 April 1989. It was further alleged that one year after the events, in only four cases charges were brought against those held responsible for the deaths: (a) On 1 March 1989, in Palo Verde, Petare, five persons were killed by soldiers. According to the allegations, the soldiers and members of the metropolitan police shot from building roofs into the crowd. The names of the victims were g Iven as follows: Martin Jos Vdsquez, aged 37 ; Jos& Quintana, aged 27; Carmen Izquiel Ochoa, aged 14; Yanly Chac6n, aged 19; and Roberto Segundo Valbuena, aged 19;
El CU . 4 /1991/36 page 132 (b) On 1 March 1989, in Palo Verde, Petare, Ruben .OE.vier Rojas Camps, aged 27, and Joel Ma nn Candoso, aged 15, were killed by soldiers; Cc) On 28 February 1989, in Maracay, Juan Carlos Celia Pens, an agronomy student, was killed by the police when he took part in a peaceful demonstration organized by students; Cd) On 28 February 1989, in Maracay, Jos& Chinquin Rodriguez was killed by soldiers; (e) On 27 February 1989, in the Central Park, Yiiliman Reyes, a student, was killed by the police; (f) On 28 February 1939, in El yal t a, Miguel Jos Rond6n Eermiidez, aged 25, a mechanic, was killed by soldiers when he was repairing his car during the curfew hours; (g) On 28 February 1989, in El Valle, Jos6 Ger6nimo Valero, aged 22, was killed by the police when he and his brother were walking past the police station of Tlueva Granada and La Bandana; (h) On 28 February 1989, in El Valle, Jestas Zenaido Quijado, aged 25, was killed by soldiers during raids carried out in his area; (i) On 28 February 1989, in Antimano, H6ctor Daniel Ortega, aged 24, a student, was killed by members of the metropolitan police; (j) On 23 February 1989, Jos del Carmen Pirela Le6n, aged 16, was killed by the police when he was shopping with a friend; Ck) On 28 February 1989, in Fetare, Pedro Garcia Pereira, aged 25, was killed by the metropolitan police; (1) On 2 March 1989, Juan A. Franco Ramos, aged 22, was shot by the metropolitan police near his home; Cm) On 1 March 1989, Pedro Guia Laya, aged 26, was killed by soldiers when he was outside his home during the curfew hours; (n) On 18 March 1989, Juan Rojas GSez, aged 19, was killed by the police; (o) On 2 March 1989, in El Cuarataro, Wolfgang Waldemar Quintana was killed by soldiers who shot through the windows of Quintana's apartment. 522. On 10 February 1990 a reply was received from the Government of Venezuela to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 11 December 1989 (see E/CN.4/199O/22, para. 439) stating that a number of the cases referred to by the Special Rapporteur were closely related since they originated in the events that dfsrupted publIc order in Venezuela between 27 February and 6 March 1989. 523. It was also stated that special consideration should be given to the situations arising out of the conduct of the police and the armed forces during this period, on the basis of nfor at!cn prov dad by the Fiscal
EICN.4/ 199 1 136 page 133 General, and in addition to the contents of the Government's reply of 15 August 1989 to the Special Rapporteur (see EICN.4/l990/22, paras. 44). and 442). 524. The reply explained that the events referred to involved a serious disruption of public order and were due to a number of political and social factors as well as an exacerbation of the prevailing economic difficulties. The suspension of a number of consitutional guarantees and the intervention of the armed forces were necessary to restore order. The excesses committed were regrettable, and the Fiscal General had instructed members of his staff to initiate the appropriate criminal proceedings and to intervene actively until a final and enforcible judgement was handed down. 525. Various difficulties confronted the office of the Fiscal General in its efforts to speed up the respective proceedings in order to secure fair decisions. For example, in the exercise of their investigative functions, the police forces had opened files on each of the cases that arose during this period and referred them to the military courts. In view of this situation, the office of the Fiscal General contacted the Judicial Police Technical Corps to point out that it was the responsibility of the Judicial authorities, not administrative bodies, to decide which cr an was competent to try Cases, and to request that such actions should not recur in the future. 526. OEe referral of al l, the cases to the military systeoe of justice made it necessary f or the office of the Fiscal General to intervene actively to ensure that the criminal cases in which civilian police officials were suspects were transferred to ordinary jurisdictiont this process requited a considerable amount of time. 527. Consequently, only a few cases were being dealt with under ordinary jurisdiction. Progress was made in a number of them as the investigations concerning the persons listed below would indicate: (a) Osquelis Campo: OEe 43rd Criminal Court of First Instance of the Judicial District of the Federal District and State of Miranda issued an arrest warrant against officials of the metropolitan police; (b) lilimar Reyes: The presumed liability of officials of the metropolitan police was also established and charges were formulated against them in the 43rd Criminal Court of First Instance of the Judicial District of the Federal District and State of Miranda; (c) Eleazar Navares: As there was sufficient evidence to justify the presumption of liability on the part of police officials, the prosecution of ficals charged members of the metropolitan police; (d) Luis Manuel Colmenares: The existence of evidence incriminating officials of the metropolitan police was ascertained. Criminal proceedings were instituted in the 42nd Criminal Court of First Instance of the Judicial District of the Federal District and' State of Miranda; (e) Arrnando Antoni o Canelone: Criminal proceedings were instttuted agaInst officials of the metropolitan police.
E /CN .4/1991 / 36 page 134 528. In other cases, it has also been difficult to establish any liability because the aggrieved parties were in the vicinity of armed clashes involving both members of the military and citizens who were taking p 'rt in the protest and using firearms. 529. With regard to the situation that occurred in Venezuela on 27 February and the following days, it should be reiterated that although a social explosion which took the form of looting of a number of businesses occurred initially, this gradually assumed a different complexion in that property was destroyed, citizens were assaulted and, finally, groups of armed citizens fired on the members of State security bodies, killing a number of military and police officials. 530. In a number of cases the action taken by the intervening forces was disproportionate, but there was a combination of factors that cannot be analysed separately. In any case, citizens could not be left undefended xindizvia the unlawful conduct of others who were destroying their property and threatening their integrity. 531. The office of the Fiscal General did a great deal of work with a view to accelerating ongoing proceedings so that the responsibilities for the events that occurred might be established. Regular meetings were held with the families of persons who died and with non—governmental organizations working in the field of human rights, for the purpose of co—operating in order to secure justice. 532. The reply further referred to the events in Axnparo, where 14 persons died on 29 October 1988. After the Standing Military Court of San Crist6ba l issued arrest warrants against the 19 officials who had participated in these acts, the Military Court of the Republic of Venezuela annulled the warrants, arguing that the former court had no jurisdiction to issue them and ordering the release of the persons accused. 533. Against this decision, the President of the Republic instructed the military prosecutor that the appropriate remedies should be exhausted; he therefore announced an appeal to vacate, that appeal being duly formalized. 534. The appeal to vacate was upheld on 5 December 1989 by the CrIminal Court of Appeal of the Supreme Court of Justice, which stated that the Standing Military Court was in effect competent to issue the arrest warrants. Consequently, it ordered that the file should be referred to the Military Court so that it might pass judgement strictly in line with the precedent established by the Supreme Court. 535. However, the Military Court had not ruled in accordance with the precedent set by the Supreme Court of Justice, and the office of the Fiacal General therefore pressed for the continuation of the case. 536. The reply further stated that the stage currently reached in the cases mentioned in the report of the Special Rapporteur (E/CN.4/l990/22, para. 439) ; was as follows: (a) Freddy Manuel Dugarte: No new evidence has been produced since 1988 and the investigation therefore remained open;
E/CN.4/ 199 1/36 page 135 (b) Jos Luis Falomares: OEis person died on 19 September 1987 in a military academy. On 12 January 1989, the Second Standing Military Court of First Instance of Maracaibo declared the investigation cloned, since there was no case, considering that the events which led to the death of this citizen were accidental and therefore not punishable. OEe judgement states that the available evidence indicated that death was caused by moderate to serious dehydration occurring on Monday, 7 September 1987; Cc) Martin Soto Mijares: OEe information was currently before the 40th Criminal Court of First Instance of the Judicial District of the Federal District and State of Miranda against three police officials; Cd) F4lix Humberto Pefla Tadino: OEis person died on 9 June 1987, as a result of gunshot wounds caused by persona alleged to be officials of the Judicial Police Technical Corps, attached to the BAS group. On 24 August 1989 the ninth prosecution official of the office of the Fiscal General requested the appropriate information from the 4th Criminal Court of First Instance of the Judicial District of the Federal District and State of Miranda; Ce) Luis Miguel Villanueva Ibarra: OEis person died on 15 December 1987, as a result of gunshot wounds caused by persons alleged to be officials attached to DISIP. OEe Supreme Court of Justice has not ruled on the appeal on facts brought by the eighth prosecution official of the prosecutor t s department of the Judicial District of Aragua State on 27 October 1988. 537, On 15 January 1991, a letter was received from the Government of Venezuela in reply to the Special Rapporteur's letter dated 11 July 1990 concerning the incidents which occurred in the country on 27 and 28 February and 6 March 1989. OEe Government noted that its detailed commentary on the incidents had already been contained in its note dated 10 February 1990. As regards concrete cases mentioned by the Special Rapporteur, the following information was provided: (a) Josh del Carmen Pirela: The case was pending, in its initial stage, before a court in the capital; (b) Yiilimar Reyes: On 11 April 1989, a warrant of arrest was issued for policeman N&stor Eduardo Camel6n Blanco, on a charge of qualified homicide. A court later found him guilty of homicide without mitigating factors. But the prosecutor's office appealed against the court's judgement on the grounds that the official had been charged with qualified homicide; Cc) Eleazar Mavaras: On 23 February 1990, a warrant of arrest was issued for Alexis Tortes Flores, on charges of qualifted homicide and unwarranted use of a firearm. Warrants of arrest were also issued for Miguel Angel Andleta, Elfades Alejandro Blanco, Omar Alexis Rodriguez, Luis Enrique Arandia, Jose Delfin Acero and Nes l6n Alfredo Altuve, for their part in committing the aforementioned of fences; Cd) Wolfgang Waldemar Quintana : The case was pending, at its initial stage, before a court in the capitalt
E/CN.6/ 199 1/36 page 136 Ce) As regards the cases of Juan Carlos Cells Pens, Josd Chinquin Rodriguez, Pedro Garcia Pereira and Miguel Jos& Rond6n BermCidez, the Ministry has so far not been informed of any complaint being filed; (f) The ease of }Mctor Daniel Ortega is under penal review with a view to bringing it before a court; Cg) As regards the c ses of Martin Jos Vhquez, Jos6 Quintana, Carmen Izquel Ochoa, Yanly Chac6n, Roberto Segundo Valbuena, Rub6n Jdvier Rojas, Joel Mann Candoso, Jos6 Cer6nimo Valera, Jestis Zenaido Quijado, Juan Franca Ramos, Pedro Guialya and Rojas G6mez, according to the fiscal these names appear on the list of persons who died and were buried in common graves. The exhumation of the bodies is now under way in order to try to establish the causes of death and to provide confirmation of death to the relatives; (h) As regards the case known as the “Amparo ease” (see para. 522 ff. above) a note dated 12 December 1990 was received providing a summary of developments prepared by the office of the Fiscal General of the Republic. The various stages of the inquiry and hearing s in the case are described in detail. Following a decision by the Supreme Court, a military court on 6 August 1990 confirmed the arrest warrants issued against 19 members of the security forces, rescinded the arrest warrants issued against civilians Jos& Antonio Arias and Wolmer Grego nlo Pinilla, and maintained open the Investigation into the offences under articles 316 and 317 of the Code of Military Justice. The affair was transmitted on 17 August 1990 to the : permanent council of war of the town of San Cnistdbal for execution of the . warrants, and by 19 September 1990 15 of them had been served. Yu os1avia 538. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Yugoslavia transmitting allegations that during the preceding year, in Kosovo province, security forces resorted to indiscriminate and e tcessive force in order to control demonstrations by ethnic Albanians, including opening fire on demonstrators without warning. 539. Incidents were described as follows: (a) On 30 January 1990, in Malisheve, a village in Kosovo province, the police fired shots indiscriminately and without warning in the village square killing several unarmed villagers. Among the victims was }lusni Mazreku, aged 17, who was killed when shots were fired through the glass panes of his father's village store; (b) On 27 January 1990, in the village of Brestovac, commune of Orahovac, the polIce fired without warning, killing four persons. Tear gas was allegedly used only after the shooting; Cc) On 27 January 1990, in ?e , Fatmir Ukaj, aged 17, was shot dead by a sniper from a h&ghriae building. There were reportedly no demonstratL.ons at that tIme in that part of the town;
E/CN.4 1 1991f36 page 137 V V (d) On 27 January 1990, in Ferizaj, Urosevac, Redzhep Aliu was shot dead while working in his garage by a member of the Serbian Republic Reserve Police Units; Ce) On JO January 1990, near Vucitrn, two persons were shot dead by policemen who indiscriminately fired without warning at people walking in the streets. The victims were Sadri Makauti, aged 53, and Sadik Malaj, aged 23; (f) On 31 January 1990, in Glogovac, two persons were killed when the police fired at an assembly of people, reportedly without any cause or warning; (g) On 28 January 1990, in Suva Reka, Milot Kryeziu, aged 9, was killed by the police; Cli) On 31 January 1990, in Stiinlje, Bekim Sejdin, aged 15, was killed during a police action aimed at dispersing a crowd; Ci) On 1 February 1990, in the village of Lubce, commune of Podujevo, Ylfete fruinmoli, aged 19, was killed, allegedly by the police; (3) On 1 February 1990, in Podujeva, Fadilj Talla, aged 25, was killed by bullets fired from a tank belonging to the Yugoslav People's Army Units. 540. In addition to the foregoing, a list of persona who were alleged to have been killed in Kosovo in January and February 1990 was given as follows: Qainil Marina (19), Loxhe, Paje; Ragip Hasanmetaj (23), Strelc, Decan; Sadik Malaj (23), Stanovc, Vucltrn; Sadri Maksutaj (48), Popove, Podujeve; Lysni Hazreku (17), Malisheve; Reshat Ymeri (21), Gjilan; Enver Morina (23), Cikatove, Glogovac; Sahit Shala (25), Krajkove, Glogovac; Xhevat Hoxha (24), Gjakove; Fatmin Kerleshi (24), Gjakove; Gani Daci (22), Nabenqjan, Peje; A u Hysvukaj (19), Cisk, Peje; Agron Fetann (24), Celinc, Orahovc; lialim Roti (29), Krusha e Madhe, Orahovc; Nesim Elshani. (28), Nogavc, Orahovc; Itilmi Krasnigi (41), floca e Vogel, Orahovc; Xhevdet Breznica (z2), Dobraje, Libjan; A u Kryezin (28), Dubavec, Malisheve; Shani Morina (22), Citakov, Glogovac; Islam Morina (31), Topanice, Kainenice; Arsim Abdu llahn (17), Mazrek, Malisheve; Ali Tafa (34), Cannaleve, Shtimle; Bedri Morina (23), Cikatove, Glogovac; Ahmet Khafqi (54), Dragash; Rasim Masligaj (47), Beleg, Decan; Syle Ukha.xhaj (49), Carrabreg, Decan; Osrnan Vokshi (66), Peje, Peje; Salman Vojvoda (22), Lianshe, Serbice. 541. On 10 December 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Yugoslavia transmitting allegations that during the past year, in the Kosovo region, several persons died as a result of police attacks including indiscriminate shooting at unarmed ethnic Albanian civilians, 542. In addition to these already communicated to the Government, a further incident was described as follows: on Friday, 13 September 1990, some time after 3.00 a.rn. in the village of Pa11at , district of Podujero, Kosovo, Bessim Latifl, aged 22 and Skender ?lonoll, aged 23 were killed when police surrounded the village with over 50 police cars and vehicles with polarized windows and indiscriminately fired at houses. 1 •
EICN.4/ 1991/36 page 138 543. On 5 September 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Yugoslavia to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 30 October 1989 (EICN.4/l990/22, paras. 444—446) concerning allegations that on 27 and 28 March 1989 and during the first days of April, several hundred persons of Albanian backgroud were killed by security forces during demonstrations in several towns of Kosovo, particularly in Zur, Malisevo and Gnjilane. The letter stated that the extremely aggressive and destructive demonstrators, all Albanian nationalists and separatists, brutally attacked security forces with stones, knives, inflarmnable objects and, finally, firearms. As a consequence, two police officers were killed by demonstrators. 544. OEe letter stated that faced with such extreme violence which threatened lives and property in the province, the security officers showed restraint and undertook only defensive measures to break up the demonstrators. It was stated that the main aim was to defend human lives and property and to re—establish public order. 545. OEe letter further stated than when these measures proved ineffective, the police forces resorted to firearms, but only in the most critical situations. These clashes of 27 and 28 March resulted in the death of 22 demonstrators, with 10 dead at the scene and two others who succumbed to wounds in or on their way to medical institutions. It was stated that police and investigative officers took all possible measures to carry out proper and on—site investigation of the deaths. The investigations established the following: (a) Zur, convnune of Prizren: Ojemsit Badalaj, aged 25, a resIdent of Zur, Prizren; Djulbehar Eadalaj, aged 23, a farmer, wounded in Zur, died in the general hospital of Pristina; Hajrim Badalaj, aged 13, a pupil, wounded in Zur, died on 10 April in surgical clinic of Pristina. OEese deaths occurred on 28 March 1989 when 600 pupils gathered in the courtyard of the primary school, which had been closed as a precaution, and refused to return home as warned. Villagers joined the pupils, and despite police orders to disband, the demonstrators attacked police vehicles carrying officers and attacked police with Molotov cocktails and firearms; (b) Gnjilane: On 27 March 1989, at around 3.00 p.m., Agim Rusiti, aged 22, from Draganac, Cnji lanc, was wounded when some 10,000 demonstrators gathered in three parts of the town injured 11 police officers, destroyed buses and shop windows and used firearms against police and a police helicopter. Agiin Rusiti died on 29 March in the hospital of Pristina; (c) Pristina, Marsala Tita Street: Vetun Salja, aged 21, a medical student, was wounded and died in Pristina Surgical Clinic; Ismet Krasnici, aged 32, a carpenter, died on the spot near “ b” mosque; Sevdat Berisa, aged 28, an employee of “Elektroprivreda Kosovo' died on the spot in L. Ribar Street; Sukrije Obrtinca, aged 16, a student, died on the spot in L. Ribar Street; Mustafa Veseljaj, aged 23, a theology student, died on the spot in Jablanicka Street. His body was discovered on 28 March in a house cellar. OEese deaths occurred when demonstrators, mostly young people, persisted in their attempts to proceed to the dty centre, threw at police stones and Molotov cocktails, attacked police vehicles and a bulldozer, set petrol on fire, and finally used firearms;
E/CN.41l99 1/36 page 139 Cd) Tita tiiltrovica: Bedri Hasanaj, aged 21, wounded near the bus terminal, died in the general hospital of Titora Mitrovica; Behar Sumnici, aged 50, died on the spot, hit by a stray bullet; Hilmi Kajtazi, aged 34, was wounded near the bus terminal and died in the general hospital of Titova Mitronica; frakif Bislimi, aged 33, dIed on the spot near the bus terminal; Ramadan Zeceri was wounded. near the bus terminal and died in the general hospital. These deaths occurred when a group of women and children were joined by a larger group in the “Tamnik” town area who blocked roads with burning tyres, attacked police with stones and other objects and, finally, with firearms. Anti—riot devices were used to discourage demonstrators but the demonstrators fired back killing one police officer; Ce) Dusanovo: Muharem Kabasi, aged 18, a student, wounded in Dusanovo, died on route to the hospital; Afrim Bitici, aged 14, a student, wounded in Dusanovo, died in the Prizren hospital; (f) Decani: Ismet Coraj, aged 21, a warehouse worker, died on the spot in Marsala Tita Street; Sali Haderdjonaj, aged 19, a student, wounded in Marsala Tita Street, died on route to hospital; Agim Kukljeci, aged 46, a driver with Kosovotrans, wounded while driving his bus, died on 8 April in Pristina hospital. The investigation found that he was struck by a stray bullet. 546. With regard to cases transmitted by the Special Rapporteur on 30 October 1989 in Malisevo, Csee E/CN.4/1990/22, para. 464 Cb)), it was stated that the demonstrations did not result in any casualties. 547. On 27 November 1990, a reply was received from the Government of Yugoslavia to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 26 July 1990 concerning allegations of use of indiscriminate and excessive force by security forces to control demonstrations by ethnic Albanians in Kosovo province. 548. The letter stated that according to an official investigation by the Federal Secretariat for Internal Affairs to the Federal Executive Council, in cases where security forces had resorted to the use of firearms it was under conditions and in a manner stipulated by law and within the limits of their legal competence, and that they resorted to firearms only in case of extreme violence and in legitimate self—defence. The letter further stated that the objective of the separatists was to impede and prevent the functioning of legal authorities, regular economic production, traffic and communication by means of persistent attacks on the lives and property of non—Albanian citizens and by attacking even with firearms, police officers, who tried to secure the full legal, personal and property security and safety of all citizens in Kosovo. 549. According to the letter, police showed utmost restraint and used firearms only in extreme necessity and in response to shots from behind barricades or at night, and it was in this context that 28 persons were killed. It was stated that the Lnternal affa!rs and court officials of Kosovo and ?ietohija ‘ did their utmost to conduct investigations, that in 22 out of the 28 cases of death the authorities were given permission by the families to perform autopsies, and that the Province Secretariat for Internal Affairs of Kosovo and Metohija submitted to the district attorney a report on the circumstances of each death and a report on the investigation conducted by the investigating Judge.
EfCN.4 1199 1/36 page 140 550. With regard to the incidents referred to in the letter of the Special Rapporteur, it was stated that allegations of the incidents in Maliafeve and Erestovac (see para. 539 (a) and (b) above) did not hold true. It was stated that on 30 January 1990, in Malisevo, Kosovo province, the police clashed with over 2,000 separatists and not with unarmed villagers, and that only after prior warnings to disperse were issued and tear—gas was used, and also after the crowd had fired, wounding a police officer, did the police respond with fire, causing the death of Husni Mazreku and AlL Kryeziu. 551. In regard to the incidents in Brestovac, Orahovac, it was stated that on 27 January 1990, 500 separatists throwing stones and flammable objects clashed with police. OEe police issued warnings, used tear—gas, and only when shots were fired from the crowd, did police return fire killing four persons, Haljim Maljusa froti, aged 30; Hiljmi Redze Krasnici, aged 41; Nesim Ozema lja Eljsani, aged 28; Agron Uka Petah, aged 23. 552. With regard to the incident in Pec (see para. 539 (c) above) it was further stated that on 27 February in Pee, violence broke out simultaneously in different places, particularly in the centre where police were shot at from a crowd of about 1,000 people. In this context, Fatmir Hazir Ukaj, aged 17, was wounded and died in the hospital of Pee. Other deaths reported in this clash were as follows: Cainil Sulja Morina, aged 19; Gani Malj Daci, aged 21; Ali Niman Hisvukaj, aged 19; and Osman Voksi, aged 56. 553. In regard to the incident in Ferizaj (see para. 539 (d) above), it was stated that Redzep Beran (not Redzep Aliu, as described in the Special Rapporteur's communication) was shot dead in front of his garage, and was an innocent victim of a clash between police and rioters. 554. Other persons stated to have been killed in similar clashes were as follows: Sahit Ibise Salja, aged 25, in Clogovac (para. 539 (ffl; Enver Bajriz Norma, aged 23, in Clogovac; Sani Ibise Murina, aged 28, in Clogovac; Selman Vojvoda, aged 22, in Srbica; ltagip Brahim Hasanmetaj, aged 22, in Decane; Sulj Harir Ukhadzaj, aged 49, in Decane; Dzevat Isrnet Hodzaj, aged 28, in Djakovica; Fatmir Mazluma Krljesi, aged 24, in Djakovica; Mi Jetulah Tafa, aged 35, in Stimlja; Dzevdet Hasana Eresnica, aged 22, in Lipljan; Bekim Ruzdi Sejdiu, aged 15, in Kosare; Rent Zecir Imeri, aged 21, in Gnjilane. 555. In regard to the incident near Vucitrn (see para. 539 (e) above), it was stated that Sadri Naksut and Sadik MalaJ were not killed while they were walking in the streets but in the context of riots on 30 January 1990 on the main Street of Pristina — Titova tlitrovica — when more than 1,000 separatists set up barricades and refused to disperse after pol!ce warnings and tear—gas were used. OEe demonstrators opened fire on the police and only then did the police return the fire. . 556. With regard to the inc denta in StimiJa in Malisevo (see para . 539 (f) and (h) above), It was also stated that on 31 January 1990 the situations were similar in the village of Stlmlja, where BOO separatists set up barricades, and near the village of Glogovac where 2,000 demonstrators besieged the raIlway tracks, With regard to the incident on 28 January 1990 in Suva Reka (para. 539 (g)), it was further stated that although it was a regular practice for Albanian separatists to use women and children for cover, it was not Milot Kryaziu, aged 9 who wan killed but Melit (Zejnela) Kryeziu, aged 32.
E/CN.4/1991/36 page 141 557. with regard to the incident along the Podujevo—Pristina road (see pars. 539 (i) and (j) above) on 1 February 1990, it was stated that separatists had set up barricades and threw Molotov cocktails to prevent the passage of a police convoy. In this clash Ylfete Rumoli and Fadilj Talla were shot dead. 558. In regard to the othet deaths referred to in the Special Rapporteur's letter, the reply stated that it was established that Bedri Morina, aged 23, from Cikatova and a philosophy student in Pristina, was not killed. It was also stated that persons with the names of Arsim Abdullahn from Masreke, Ahmet Khafqi from Dragas and Rasim Masligaj from Beleg did not exist. 559. Islam Marina from Topanica was said not to have been shot in riots but when the driver of a car in which he was riding ran into a police patrol at high speed outside osovo on 5 February 1990. Criminal charges were brought against the driver for attacking police officers. s&o. On 15 January 1991, a reply was received from the Government of Yugoslavia to the Special Rapporteur's letter of 10 December 1990 stating that, as already explained in the Government t s letter of 27 November 1990, the well—organized and aggressive Albanian secessionist movement in Kosovo was the most drastic example of minority right abuses for the purpose of secession, unprecedented in Europe in the post—war period. It was also stated that in the face of such an aggressive separatist drive, also having terrorist features, it was necessary to take all measures required by law with a view to defending the territorial Integrity of Serbia and the unity of Yugoslavia as a whole and that the introduction of these measures resulted in tosses of human life, as was the case with Besim Latifi and Skender Monolli. 561. According to the reply, in order to discover the location of smuggled arms and ammunition, the police sealed off a few residential buildings and other facilities in the village of Palatna on 13 September 1990 at 5.30 a.m. It was stated that the persons trapped in the buildings and those hiding in the adjoining woods put up strong resistance until 11.10 aan. and that shots were fired at the police and their vehicles. It was stated that despite the police warning, the shooting intensified and a policeman was seriously wounded by the shots fired by Besim Latifi; the police fired back and Latifi died instantly. It was also stated that while one of the buildings was being searched, Skender Monolli opened fire on the policemen standing by their car, gravely injuring a police ofEicer; the police fired back at him, he was wounded, and later died in a hospital at Pristine, 562. After the search had been completed, the following items were found: four army rifles, four guns, a large supply of ammunition for guns and rifles, slow—burning dynamite sticks and a radio transmitter. 363. It was stated thet the tnvestigation on the scene wan conducted by two teams, including examining magistrates and public prosecutors from Pristina; that on the basis of the very thorough fnvestigation it was established that the police had used firearms I I accordance with its legal authority (under article 44, para. 1, subpara. 5 of the Law of the Republic of Serbia on Internal Affairs and article 6, para. 1, subpara. 3 of the rules for the use of firearms) in order to deter direct attacks endangering life, and only against persons firing at and wound ing pol:ce offIcers. The reply concluded
E /CN .4/199l 136 page 142 by stating that the allegations contained in the Special Rapporteur's letter of 10 December 1990 that the police fired indiscriminately at unarmed Albanian civilians were unfounded. . 564. The reply also referred to the Law on Internal Affairs Relating to the Use of Firearms. In carrying out their duties authorized internal affairs officers resort to firearms and other means of coercion in compliance with the Law on Internal Affairs of th Socialist Autonomous Province (SAP) of Kosovo . . ( official. Gazette. SAP of Kosoyc , No. 46/87). Under article 63 of the above law, officers are authorized to resort to the use of firearms if there are no other means of protecting human lives or to counter an attack endangering the lives of officers on duty. It was further stated that, under article 68, an officer on duty, before resorting to firearms or other means of force, is obliged to warn the person in question beforehand of his intentions providing that the circumstances allow for it. 565. On 26 July 1990, a letter was sent to the Government of Zaire transmitting allegations that in April and May 1990, several students and politial activists were shot dead by Government forces in a summary manner for their activities in support of political reforms. 566. The following incidents were described: (a) On 30 April 1990, in icinshasa, several members of the Union for Democracy and Social Progress (UDPS) were killed by soldiers of the Division p&cia1e pr6sidentielle (DSP) using guns and bayonets to disperse a gathering of the Union. Among those killed were Mwamba Denis and Bwala Ewala; (b) During the night of 11 May 1990, in Shaba region, several students were shot dead or killed with bayonets and machetes at the campus of Lubumbashi University, by soldiers of the DSP. According to a source, the number of victims reached over 100. OEe killings reportedly took place after some students had beaten several of their colleagues who were suspected of being informers for the security services. 567. At the time of preparation of the present report, no reply had been received from the Government of Zaire. *
E / C II • L 1 1991 / 36 . . page 143 111. LEGAL AND ANALYTICAL FRAMEWORK WITHIN WHICH THE MANDATE OF THE SPECIAL RAPPORTEUR IS IMPLEMENTED 568. The mandate of the Special Rapporteur was established by Economic and Social Council resolution 1982/35, the first two paragraphs of which define its normative basis: the Universal Declaration of Human Rights and the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights. These instruments, it is recalled, guarantee the right to life, liberty and security of the person and seek to ensure that every human being has the right to life, that such right shall be protected by law and that no one shall be deprived arbitrarily of his or her life. 569. Relevant provisions of the Covenant include article 4 concerning a state of emergency, article 7 concerning torture or cruel, inhuman or degrading treatment or punishment, article 9 concerning the right to liberty and security of person, article 10 concerning the treatment of persons deprived of their liberty, article 14 concerning the right of the person to procedural and substantive due process of law and article 15 stating the principle of njj These provisions are considered against the background of article 6 of the Covenant and article 3 of the Universal Declaration, both of which affirm the inherent right of every human being to life. The mandate of the Special Rapporteur has to be understood within the legal context of the preceding provisions as well as within the factual context prevailing in a particular country. 570. In addition, the Special Rapporteur is guided by a number of other standards promulgated by United Nations organs and bodies. These are: the Standard Minimum Rules for the Treatment of Prisoners (Economic and Social Council resolution 663C (XXIV) of 31 July 1957 and 2076 (LXII) of 13 May 1977), the Declaration on the Protection of All Persons from Being subjected to Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment (General Assembly resolution 3452 (XXX) of 9 December 1975); the Code of Conduct for Law Enforcement Officials (General Assembly resolution 34/169 of 17 December 1979); the Safeguards guaranteeing protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty (Economic and Social Council resolution 1984/50 of 25 May 1984); the Convention against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment (General Assembly resolution 39/46 of 10 December 1984); the Body of Principles for the Protection of All Persons under Any Form of Detention or Imprisonment (General Assembly resolution 43/173 of 9 December 1988); the Effective prevention and investigation of extra—legal, arbitrary and summary executions (Economic and Social Council resolution 1989/65 of 24 May 1989); and the Basic Principles on the Use of Force and Firearms by Law Enforcement Officials (adopted by the Eighth United Nations Congress on the Prevention of Crime and the Treatment of Offenders, held in Havana, Cuba, from 27 August to 7 September 1990; the text of these Principles is attached as an annex to the present report). 571. Finally, the Special Rapporteur, in the implementation of his mandate during the past year and in the drafting of the present report, took into account resolutIons 1990/75 and 1990176 adopted by the Commission on Human Rights at its forty—sixth session. The first requested the Special Rapporteur to pay attention in his report to the consequences of acts of violence
E/CN.4/199 1/36 page 144 committed by irregular armed groups and drug traffickers upon the enjoyment of human rights. The second requested him to take urgent steps in conformity with his mandate to help prevent the occurrence of acts of intimidation or reprisals and to devote special attention to this in his report. 572. The mandate of the Special Rapporteur gradually has come to define its terms of reference through practice and the Special Rapporteur has dealt with situations which can be categori:ed as follows: (a) Allegations of executions or deaths which might have taken place in the absence of safeguards, such as those set forth above, designed to protect the right to life. These allegations concern: (i) Actual or imminent executions: a. Without a trial; k. With a trial but without safeguards designed to protect the rights of the defendant as provided for in articles 14 and 15 of the international Covenant on Civil and Political Rights; (ii) Deaths which took place: e• As a result of torture or cruel, inhuman or degrading treatment during detention; li. As a result of abuse of force by police, military or any other governmental or quasi—governmental forces; . As a result of assault by paramilitary groups under official control; . . As a result of assault by individuals or paramilitary groups not under official control, but acting with official collusion or connivance; (b) In addition to the above, the Special Rapporteur has taken action concerning cases of death threats allegedly made by: (I) Members of police, military or any other governmental or quasi—governmental forces; (ii) Individuals or paramilitary groups under official control or acting with official collusion or connivance. 573. The Special Rapporteur has implemented his mandate by: (a) Requesting information from the Governments concerned relating to allegations of summary or arbitrary executions; (b) Issuing urgent appeals to the Governments concerned regarding alleged cases of imminent or threatened executions;
. E/CN.4 1l991/36 page 11*5 (c) Upon the invitation of the Government concerned, conducting on—site visits to certain of the countries with which he has had communications during the course of the execution of his mandate; Cd) Meetings with Government representatives. 574. The Special Rapporteur's methodology of work has developed in practice over the years. At present, the annual report of the Special Rapporteur reflects allegations transmitted to Governments in the form of urgent appeals by cable and communications by letter, together with information or observations supplied by Governments in response to the same. On—site visits conducted by the Special Rapporteur are reflected either within the annual report or as addenda thereto. A detailed description of allegations, information and Government views received during the course of the Special Rapporteur's visit, together with the Special Rapporteur's evaluation and recommendations are set forth therein. 575. The Special Rapporteur is aware of the limitations of the present methodology. Taking into account comments and suggestions received concerning ways and means of improving that methodology, the Special Rapporteur would like, preliminarily, to suggest a number of practical steps designed to improve it. Within the context of promoting a more sustained interaction with Governments, the Special Rapporteur intends to initiate specific follow—up procedures. These would include: (a) Where replies are received from Governments, the Special Rapporteur will hold consultations with the Governments concerned, as well as with the sources of the information on which the allegations transmitted to the Governments were based. In resolutions 44/159 and 45/156, the General Assembly requested the Special Rapporteur “to promote an exchange of views between Governments and those who provided reliable information to the Special Rapporteur, where the Special Rapporteur considers that such exchanges of information might be useful”. The Special Rapporteur indicated in his last report that he was willing to assume this task (E/CN.411990/22, para. 475); he reaffirms that willingness; (b) Where replies are not received from Governments, the Special Rapporteur will continue to solicit Government replies and to monitor the development of the situation or cases in question.
E/CN.4 1 199 1 136 page 146 IV. CONCLUSIONS AND RECOMMENDATIONS A. 1isiszn 576. With his present report, the Special Rapporteur has completed his ninth year since the establishment of his mandate in 1982. In reviewing past reports and information he has received, he concludes that summary or arbitrary executions still are prevalent in many parts of the world. 577. As the mandate of the Special Rapporteur has become better known, the amount of information received relating to summary and arbitrary executions rises. So too, have the number of communications to Governments. However, the Special Rapporteur is aware that the information which has reached him represents only a part of the entire phenomenon of summary and arbitrary executions. He hopes that the efforts and co—operation of various international and national organizations directed at establishing a better information network will continue to improve the transmission of information both in quantity and speed. 578. The Special Rapporteur wishes to draw the attention of the international community to the following situation: 1. fl 579. The year 1990 saw an increasing number of death threats. These were aimed particularly at human rights activists, trade unionists, teachers, lawyers, peasants and student leaders. In many cases they were carried out. These threats emanated from a variety of sources such as police, military, paramilitary groups and civil defence groups. As can be seen from this report, the practice of the Special Rapporteur has been in such canes to issue an urgent appeal to the Government to take appropriate measures to protect the life of the person so threatened. The Special Rapporteur is pleased to note that in a number of cases Governments have carried out an investigation leading to the capture of the person or group which issued the threat. In some cases, Governments have denied the allegations. In many cases, however, Qovernments have not responded to the urgent appeal and consequently, the Gp oinL RapportGur in not awnra if any anion han b n tfl n by thn Qovnrnm@nt concerned , 2. Deaths in custody 580. Throughout 1990, there was an alarming increase in reports of people who had died in custody. In many cases, it was alleged that the deaths had resulted from torture. In other cases, deaths reportedly resulted from harsh prison conditions, or a lack of food, hygiene or medical attention, 331 , In a tow Canoe, a pQ.tt tn. jfl report wag ianuad and a magisterial inquiry led to those responsible being disciplined by suspension or dismissal. In many casea, however, such procedures were not followed and the bodies were not returned to the relatives when they so requested. w :‘T ‘:j 4 1' ' 'n • . ., , , : . . . . - - , - . - -
R/CN.4/l99l/36 page 147 3. Executions fol lowin2 inadequate trial or ludiciaLDrocedure s 582. As can be seen from the report, a number of persons %lere executed pursuant to a conviction arrived at following inadequate judicial procedures. In some cases, the accused persons were not allowed to call witnesses. In others, legal representation was not allowed. In many cases, the summary procedure did not allow for the decision to be reviewed by a higher tribunal in accordance with the law. In at least one case, the higher tribunal was the same tribunal which rendered the initial decision. 4. Extra—legal executions within the context of situations of internal conflict 583. During the past year, the Special Rapporteur received information on incidents of killings by members of military units of members of opposition groups in the areas where the Government had lost effective control. In such areas, rival units of Government forces fought with each other or opposition groups fought with army units which were not effectively controlled by the army central command. 584. The Special Rapporteur wishes, in particular, to highlight the situation which prevailed in Liberia throughout much of 1990. Because of the lack of governmental authority within the country, the Special Rapporteur was unable to transmit an appeal concerning the situation. Thousands of civilians have reportedly died since January 1990, when rebel forces entered into Nimba county from outside Liberia and the Government forces retaliated against the local population. Killings notably increased after the rebel forces, called the National Patriotic Front of Liberia (NPFL), and its breakaway group entered Monrovia in July 1990. A large number of civilians were reportedly killed both by Govertunent troops and by the rebel groups. It was alleged that the Government, by then, had lost effective control over the behaviour of its troops who resorted to summary killings of civilians mainly belonging to the do and Mano ethnic groups. In one such incident, on 29 July 1990, some 600 civilians including women and children who had sought refuge at a church in Monrovia were reportedly killed in a summary manner by Govern ment t roops. Rebel forces, on the other hand, allegedly killed prisoners, ivilians in areas taken over by their troops and those fleeing Monrovia who were suspected of being sympathetic to the Government or those belonging to the Krahn ethnic group or the Mandingo community. By August 1990, when member States of the Economic Community of West African States (ECOWAS) sent troops (ECOMOG) in an attempt to achieve a cease—fire, the Government had lost its control over the country. Since the capture and the execution of President Samuel floe by rebel forces in November 1990, the country had been without any governmental authoritiy and the armed conflict between rival rebel forces continued. 585. During the past year, the Spec!al Rapporteur received information from various parts of the world indicating that a large number of lives were lost in internal armed conflicts. By analysfng such informatIon, the Special Rapporteur recognIzes that violent armed conflicts are widespread and that ] the level of violence used both by Government forces and opposition groups
E/CN.4/1991/36 page ltiB continues to escalate. The violent suppression of demonstrations or protests often involved indiscriminate and excessive use of lethal force, causing an unjustifiable loss of lives. Such incidents, together with acts of terrorism and retributive killings and assassination, have been attributed both to Government agents and to opposition groups. 586. in previous reports, the Special Rapporteur has drawn attention to intimidation, death threats, assassination attempts and various other forms of reprisal against individuals and human rights groups involved in cases or situations of summary or arbitrary executions. At its forty—sixth session, the Commission adopted resolution 1990/76, encouraging the Special Rapporteur to take more effective steps to protect individuals or groups who are the victims of reprisals because of their human rights activities. The Special Rapporteur welcomes the support voiced by the Commission to these human rights defenders and is endeavouring, within the limited resources available to him, to realize such protective measures. 587. In previous reports, the Special Rapporteur also has highlighted deaths which result from groups opposing the Government. At its forty—sixth session, the Commission adopted resolution 1990/75, expressing its deep concern at the adverse effects on the enjoyment of human rights of the crimes and atrocities committed in many countries by irregular armed groups, regardless of their origin, and drug traffickers, and requesting Special Rapporteurs to pay particular attention to the activities of irregular armed groups and drug traffickers in their forthcoming reports to the Commission. The Special Rapporteur drew the attention of the Commission to these problems particularly in the context of a more detailed study of country situations as a result of field missions and wishes to refer to his report on the visit to Colombia (11—20 October 1989) presented to the Commission at its last session (E/CN. 4/1990/22/Add .1). 588. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur particularly would 1ik to draw the attention of the international community to the increased occurrence of summary or arbitrary executions in situations of internal conflict. In addition to those who were killed in such situations, many others died from malnutrition and lack of adequate medical attention. One such situation, namely that of Liberia, is described in detail by the Special Rapporteur above. A number of other phenomena of summary or arbitrary executIons cited by the Special Rapporteur in the present report occurred within the contest f internal conflicts. 589. Unfortunately, it would appear as though such situations are likely to increase in number and, quite possibly, in intensity in forthcoming yecrs. The Special Rapporteur is disposed of a limited number of mechanisms t. implement his mandate: he is able to appeal to Governments to adhere to the principles embodied In existing international instruments and standards and. within the limIts of human and material resources currently at his dispo , to follow—up such appeals; he is able to call upon the International community, in general, and upon individuals, non—governmental and intergovernmental organltations active in the field of human rights, in particular, to support the activities of the Special Rapoorteur.
E/CN.4/l99 1/36 page 169 590. Especially in situations of internal conflict, the Special Rapporteur often has received replies from Governments asserting the non—responsibility of the latter for a case or situation on the grounds that the killing was not the result either of an abuse of force by governmental or quasi—governmental forces, or of groups or individuals acting under official control. Yet, as a legal and as a practical matter, the Special Rapporteur's only interlocutor is the Government of a particular State and he cannot but take up these matters with tho Govarnmonta concornad. 591. The Special Rapporteur wishes to reiterate that where a Government's practice fails to meet the standards set forth in the Principles on effective prevention and investigation of extra—legal, arbitrary and summary executions (Economic and Social Council resolution 1989/65 of 24 May 1989), the Special Rapporteur will consider such failure as an indication of that Government's responsibility, even where Government officials are found not to be directly involved in the acts of summary or arbitrary execution (E/CN.4/1990/22, para. 463). The Special Rapporteur intends to invoke these Principles in his communications with Governments, as well as in any follow—up procedures undertaken in connection with particular situations or cases. 592. Despite the above, the Special Rapporteur recognizes that, in a number of instances, Governments are making an earnest effort to prevent the killings, carry out proper investigations and conduct legal proceedings (Economic and Social Council resolution 1989165 of 24 May 1989). OEe Special Rapporteur praises these efforts and expects that they will continue. Nevertheless, in so far as the mandate of the Special Rapporteur can be understood only against the background of the need to ensure the inherent right of the person to life, he calls upon Governments to consider ways in which respect for that right can be maintained under all conditions, including those of internal conflict. 593. In this connection, the Special Rapporteur would welcome any initiatives undertaken by the Commission on Human Rights or by its Sub—Commission to formulate standards to which Governments and groups opposing Governments could refer during situations of armed conflict in order to lower the level of violence and the needless loss of life consequent thereupon. Given the practical experience which the Special Rapporteur has obtained during the course f his mandate, he would be willing to put such experience at the disposal of the Commission or the Sub—Commission whenever so requested. 594. In response to resolution 1990/58 of the Commission on Human Rights, the Special Rapporteur reiterates his conviction that the effectiveness of his mandate can be enhanced through the use of the advisory services and technical assistance programme operating within the Centre for Human Rights (E/CN.4/1990/22, paras. 466—468) , He, therefore, will make recommendations in this regard wherever appropriate and especially within the context of country—specific situations and on the basis of information obtained during the course of jj j.j s visits to countries. 595. Finally, the Special Rapporteur would like to express his gratitude for the support given to Elm by the secretariat of the United Nations Centre for Human Rights throughout the perIod during which he has served as the Special Rapporteur on summary or arbitrary executions. In order, however, to achieve
E/CN.4/ 199l136 page 150 the above—mentioned goals, the Special Rapporteur would require increased human and material resources from the secretariat. The latter are necessary to enable the Special Rapporteur adequately to cope with the analysis of an ever—increasing flow of information relating to his mandate. In addition, the Special Rapporteur would require additional assistance in researching the issues relating to both the thematic and country—oriented aspects of his mandate and, in particular, the complex research and analytical responsibilities involved in the preparation of on—site visits to countries. It would, indeed, be desirable to obtain additional resources to enable the Special Rapporteur to conduct more on—site visits, together with the necessary follow—up thereto. 596. OEe mandate of the Special Rapporteur has developed markedly since its inception. The Special Rapporteur calls upon the Commission to lend the Special Rapporteur the support he needs to carry out a mandate whose obligations and meaning continue to evolve. . Recommendations 597. In view of these conclusions, the Special Rapporteur would like to make a number of recommendations, as follows. 598. He would like to recommend to Governments: (a) To review national laws and regulations, as well as the practice of judicial authorities, with a view to securing effective implementation of the standards set forth in the preceding chapter and, in particular, the latest set of standards adopted by the Eighth United Nations Congress on the Prevention of Crime and the Treatment of Offenders; (b) To make every effort to ensure that governmental or quasi— governmental forces, as well as individuals or paramilitary groups operating under official control adhere to the above—mentioned standards; Cc) Immediately to take measures to ensure the effective protection of persons and groups who play key roles in defending human rights and promoting social justice from intimidation, death threats, assassination attempts and various other forms of reprisal; (ci) To establish within the Government an independent body designed to improve co—operation between the Government and United Nations organs, bodies and specialized agencies, as iet1 as with international, regional and national organizations concerned with matters of human rights; Ce) To include instruction in human rights in the curricula of secondary school and university students and, where possible, in the curriculum of primary school students; CE) To include instruction in human rights law and practice in the training of all law enforcement and mil itary personnel.
EICN .4/1991/36 page 151 599. OEe Special Rapporteur wishes to recommend to international organizations: (a) To emphasize the importance of the implementation of international human rights norms and principles as set forth in international human rights instruments and resolutions and, in particular, those of the General Assembly and the Economic and Social Council; (b) To organize at the regional and national levels human rights seminars and training courses, utilizing the manual on the effective prevention and investigation of extra—legal, summary and arbitrary executions; (c) To assist the secretariat of the United Nations Centre for Human Rights in meeting its ever—growing obligations in the monitoring of human rights protection and the granting of advisory services and technical assistance; (d) To promote information activities in order to disseminate as widely as possible the latest achievements in the field of human rights with the aim of heightening awareness within the international community of ways in which it actively can protect and promote human rights.
E/CN.4/1991/36 page 152 BASIC PRINCIPLES ON THE USE OF FORCE AND FIREARMS BY LAW ENFORCEMENT OFFICIALS fj/ S Whereas the work of law enforcement officials is a social service of great importance and there is, therefore, a need to maintain and, whenever necessary, to improve the working conditions and status of these officials, Whereas a threat to the life and safety of law enforcement officials must be seen as a threat to the stability of society as a whole, Whereas law enforcement officials have a vital role in the protection of the right to life, liberty and security of the person, as guaranteed in the Universal Declaration of Human Rights and reaffirmed in the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, Whereas the Standard Minimum Rules for the Treatment of Prisoners provide for the circumstances in which prison officials may use force in the course of their duties, Whereas article 3 of the Code of Conduct for Law Enforcement Officials provides that law enforcement officials may use force only when strictly necessary and to the extent requited for the performance of their duty, Whereas the preparatory meeting for the Seventh United Nations Congress on the Prevention of Crime and the Treatment of Offenders, held at Varenna, Italy, agreed on elements to be considered in the course of further work on restraints on the use of force and firearms by law enforcement officials, Whereas the Seventh Congress, in its resolution 14, inter alia , emphasizes that the use of force and firearms by law enforcement officials should be commensurate with due respect for human rights, Whereas the Economic and Social Council, in its resolution 1986/10, section IX, of 21 May 1986, invited member States to pay particular attention in the implementation of the Code to the use of force and firearms by law enforcement officials, and the General Assembly, in its resolution 41/149 of 4 December 1985, inter alia , welcomed this recommendation made by the Council, Whereas it is appropriate that, with due regard to their personal safety, consideration be given to the role of law enforcement officials in relation to the administration of justice, to the protection of the right to life, liberty and security of the person, to their responsibility to maintain public safety and social peace and to the importance of their qualifications, training and conduct, / OEe text below is that adopted by the Eighth United Nations Congress on the Prevention of Crime and the Treatment of Offenders (Havana 1 Cuba, 27 August—7 September 1990).
EICN .4 1l99l 136 page 153 The basic principles set forth below, which have been formulated to assist member States in their task of ensuring and promoting the proper role of law enforcement officials, should be taken into account and respected by Governments within the framework of their national legislation and practice, and be brought to the attention of law enforcement officials as well as other persons, such as judges, prosecutors, lawyers, members of the executive branch and the legislature, and the public. General provisions 1. Governments and law enforcement agencies shall adopt and implement rules and regulations on the use of force and firearms against persons by law enforcement officials. In developing such rules and regulations, Governments and law enforcement agencies shall keep the ethical issues associated with the use of force and firearms constantly under review. 2. Governments and law enforcement agencies should develop a range of means as broad as possible and equip law enforcement officials with various types of weapons and ammunition that would allow for a differentiated use of force and firearms. These should include the development of non—lethal incapacitating weapons for use in appropriate situations, with a view to increasingly restraining the application of means capable of causing death or injury to persons. For the same purpose, it should also be possible for law enforcement officials to be equipped with self—defensive equipment such as shields, helmets, bullet—proof vests and bullet—proof means of transportation, in order to decrease the need to use weapons of any kind. 3. The development and deployment of non—lethal incapacitating weapons should be carefully evaluated in order to minimi;e the risk of endangering uninvolved persons, and the use of such weapons should be carefully controlled. 4. Law enforcement officials, in carrying out their duty, shall, as far as possible, apply non—violent means before resorting to the use of force and firearms. They may use force and firearms only if other means remain ineffective or without any promise of achieving the intended result. 5. Whenever the lawful use of force and firearms is unavoidable, law enforcement officials shall: (a) Exercise restraint in such use and act in proportion to the seriousness of the offence and the legitimate objective to be achieved; II) ?1inimi e damage and injury, and respect and preserve human life; (c) Ensure that assistance and medical aid are rendered to any injured or affected persons at the earliest possible moment; (d) Ensure that relatives or close friends of the injured or affected person are notified at the earliest possible moment. - — - -
El CN .4 / 1991/36 page 154 6. Where injury or death is caused by the use of force and firearms by law enforcement officials, they shall report the incident promptly to their superiors, in accordance with principle 22. 7. Covernments shall ensure that arbitrary or abusive use of force and firearms by law enforcement officials is punished as a criminal offence under 3 their law. 4 8. Exceptional circumstances such as internal political instability or any other public emergency may not be invoked to Justify any departure from these basic principles. Soecial provisions 9. Law enforcement officials shall not use firearms against persons except in self—defence or defence of others against the imminent threat of death or serious injury, to prevent the perpetration of a particularly serious crime involving grave threat to life, to arrest a person presenting such a danger and resisting their authority, or to prevent his or her escape, and only when less extreme means are insufficient to achieve these objectives. In any event, intentional lethal use of firearms may only be made when strictly unavoidable in order to protect life. 10. In the circumstances provided for under principle 9, law enforcement officials shall identify themselves as such and give a clear warning of their intent to use firearms, with sufficient time for the warning to be observed, unless to do so would unduly place the law enforcement officials at risk or would create a risk of death or serious harm to other persons, or would be clearly inappropriate or pointless in the circumstances of the incident. 11. Rules and regulations on the use of firearms by law enforcement officials should include guidelines that: (a) Specify the circumstances under which law enforcement officials are authorized to carry firearms and prescribe the types of firearms and ammunition permitted; (b) Ensure that firearms are used only in appropriate circumstances and in a manner likely to decrease the risk of unnecessary harm; (c) Prohibit the use of those firearms and ammunition that cause unwarranted injury or present an unwarranted risk; Cd) Regulate the control, storage and issuing of firearms, including procedures for ensuring that law enforcement officials are accountable for the firearms and ammunition issued to them; (e) Provide for warnings to be given, If appropriate, when firearms are to be discharged; U) ProvIde for a system of reporting whenever law enforcement officials use firearms in the performance of theIr duty. I I ,
E/CN.'+/1991/36 page 155 Policing unlawful assemblies 12. As everyone is allowed to participate in lawful and peaceful assemblies, in accordance with the principles embodied in the Universal Declaration of Human Rights and the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights, Governments and law enforcement agencies and officials shall recognize that force and fir&rms may be used only in accordance with principles 13 and 14. 13. In the dispersal of assemblies that are unlawful but non—violent, law enforcement officials shall avoid the use of force or, where that is not practicable, shall restrict such force to the minimum extent necessary. 14. In the dispersal of violent assemblies, law enforcement officials may use firearms only when less dangerous means are not practicable and only to the minimum ext nt necessary. Law enforcement officials shall not use firearms in such cases, except under the conditions stipulated in principle 9. Policin persons in custody or detention 15. Law enforcement officials, in their relations with persons in custody or detention, shall not use force, except when strictly necessary for the maintenance of security and order within the institution, or when personal safety is threatened. 16. Law enforcement officials, in their relations with persons in custody or detention, shall not use firearms, except in self—defence or in the defence of others against the immediate threat of death or serious injury, or when strictly necessary to prevent the escape of a person in custody or detention presenting the danger referred to in principle 9. 17. The preceding principles are without prejudice to the rights, duties and responsibilities of prison officials, as set out in the Standard Minimum Rules for the Treatment of Prisoners, particularly rules 33, 34 and 54. Oualifications. traininz and counselling 18. Governments and law enforcement agencies shall ensure that all law enforcement officials are selected by proper screening procedures, have appropriate moral, psychological and physical qualities for the effective exercise of their functions and receive continuous and thorough professional training. Their continued fitness to perform these functions should be subject to periodic review. 19. Governments and law enforcement agencies shall ensure that all law enforcement officials are provided with training and are tested in accordance with appropriate prof cLency standards in the use of force. Those law enforcement offjcfals who are required to carry firearms should be authcri:ed to do so only upon completion of special training in their use. 20 , In the training of law enforcement officials, Governments and law enforcement agencies shall give special attention to issues of police ethics and human rights, espcc ally in the lnvestigatLve process, to alternatives to the use of force and firearms, including the peaceful settlement of conflicts,
E / CN • 4/1991 / 36 page 136 the understanding of crowd behaviour, and the methods of persuasion, negotiation and mediation, as well as to technical means, with a view to limiting the use of force and firearms. Law enforcement agencies should review their training programmes and operational procedures in the light of particular incidents. 21. Governments and law enforcement agencies shall make stress counselling available to law enfbrcement officials who are involved in 4 situations where force and firearms are used. Reporting and review procedures 22. Governments and law enforcement agencies shall establish effective reporting and review procedures for all. incidents referred to in principles 6 and 11 (f). For incidents reported pursuant to these principles, Governments tnd law enforcement agencies shall ensure that an effective review process is available and that independent administrative or prosecutorial authorities are in a position to exercise jurisdiction in appropriate circumstances. In cases of death and serious injury or other grave consequences, a detailed report shall be sent promptly to the competent authorities responsible for administrative review and judicial control. 23. Persona affected by the use of force and firearms or their legal representatives shall have access to an independent process, including a judiolal process. In the ovent of the death of such persons, this provision shall apply to their dependants accordingly. 24. Governments and law enforcement agencies shall ensure that superior officers are held responsible if they know, or should have known, that law enforcement officials under their command are resorting, or have resorted, to the unlawful use of force and firearms, and they did not take all measures in their power to prevent, suppress or report such use. 25. Governments and law enforcement agencies shall ensure that no criminal or disciplinary sanction is imposed on law enforcement officials who, in compliance with the Code of Conduct for Law Enforcement Officials and these asic principles, refuse to carry out an order to use force and firearms, or who report such use by other officials. 26. Obedience to superior orders shal l . be no defence if law enforcement officials knew that an order to use force and firearms resulting in the death or serious injury of a person was manifestly unlawful and had a reasonable opportunity to refuse to follow it. In any case, responsibility also rests on the superiors who gave the unlawful orders. I I